Protistology
An International Journal
Vol. 2, Number 4, 2002
CONTENTS
Igor V Dovgal
Evolution, phylogeny and classification of Suctorea (Ciliophora)
Introduction 194
Chapter 1. The origin of suctorian ciliates and the taxonomic position
of the group 198
Chapter 2. Some regularities in the evolution of suctorea 203
Chapter 3. The taxonomy of some problematic suctorian genera
and species 210
Chapter 4. The phylogeny of Suctorea 224
Chapter 5. Principles of taxonomy and new classification of Suctorea 238
References 264
Instructions to authors
271
Protistology 2 (4), 194-270 (2002)
Protistology
Evolution, phylogeny and classification of Suctorea (Ciliophora)
Igor V. Dovgal
Schmalhausen Institute of Zoology NAS of Ukraine, Kiev, Ukraine
Summary
The monograph is concerned with suctorian ciliates. Using the materials collected and generalizing all literary data available, the author has proposed original hypotheses of suctorians’ origin and the main regularities of the evolution of the taxa. A new scheme of phylogeny of Suctorea has also been elaborated. Based on this research a new system of the class Suctorea, including 4 subclasses, 15 orders, 2 suborders, 41 families and 124 genera, has been proposed.
Key words: Suctorea, evolution, phylogeny, classification
Introduction
This monograph is concerned with suctorian ciliates. This group is one of the most species-rich (531 according to our data) groups among Ciliophora Doflein, 1901. Suctorian species constitute about 7% of ciliate species that have been described to date.
Habitats. Suctorians can be found in all types of water bodies on a wide diversity of hosts and substrates. The majority of these ciliates are commensals of various water invertebrates or vertebrates (fishes or turtles). Suctorian ciliates also inhabit the intestine of horses, rhinoceroses, guinea pigs and elephants (Timoshenko, 1996; Van Hoven et al., 1998, and others).
There are both ectoparasitic and endoparasitic species among suctorians. These ciliates often parasitize on other ciliates including suctorians. The parasites of multicellular organisms such as rotifers, molluscs, sabellid polychaetes, turbellarians are also known.
Several podophryid and trichophryid suctorian
species are planktonic. Typically they are freshwater forms but marine species (the genus Marinecta Jankowski, 1978) have also been recorded. It seems likely that all representatives of this ecological group are secondaryly planktonic.
Morphology. Suctorian ciliates are largely sessile forms. The adult stage (trophont) is usually the stalked zooid (Fig. 1). The unstalked flattened (Fig. 2) or ramified forms are less common. The presence of one or more tentacles, as a rule with a distal extention (knob) is most characteristic of the group.
The ciliature is lacking in trophonts of suctorians (except the commensals of guinea pigs). Only in the ventral zone near the contractile vacuole canal a small field of barren kinetosomes with reduced ectoplasmic fibrils may occur (Seravin and Gerassimova, 1978).
The body of suctorian trophonts characteristically ranges in size from 100 |jm to 200 |j,m but certain ophryodendrid suctorians may be as large as 800 |jm,
© 2002 by Russia, Protistology
while Dendrosoma radians Ehrenberg, 1838 reaches 2000 |j,m (Dovgal, 1996) or even 5000 |j,m (Batisse, 1994).
The body shape of suctorian trophonts is widely diversified, which has been associated with sessile mode of life, substrate diversity, environment factors and lack of cilia (Batisse, 1994), with the substitution of the cytostome (a characteristic centre responsible for ciliate shape) by numerous tentacles (Dovgal, 1996). Interestingly, coloniality is presumably not characteristic of suctorian ciliates.
Exoskeleton is present as different stalks and loricas. Besides lorica, completely covering the ciliate body, semilorica or basotheca, covering only the lower part of the body is often observed. The stylotheca (thecostyle) represents type of loricas. The organisms with stylotheca adhere to the substrate by means of their stalk-like protuberance. The mucous lorica forming at the expense of the glycocalyx development is not uncommon in Suctorea as well.
There is invariably one macronucleus in suctorians. The macronucleus varies in shape from spherical or oval (in small species) to ribbon-like or branched (in large species). The micronuclei are generally numerous in suctorian ciliates and unevenly distributed around the macronucleus or (rarely) within the depressions in the latter.
There are contractile vacuoles in suctorians of all ecological groups: freshwater, marine and parasitic. The number of contractile vacuoles can vary in accordance with suctorian species, age and size. For example, there are mainly one or two vacuoles in exogemmin and endogemmin suctorians, whereas numerous vacuoles
Fig. 2. Dendrocometes paradoxus (Stein, 1851) from the gill ofgammarid amphipod Gammarus lacustris Sars, 1863. Scanning electron microscopy (x860).
Fig. 1. Discophrya elongata (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) from the leg of water bug Ranatra linearis (Linnaeus, 1758). Scanning electron microscopy (x1200). Abbreviations: tn — tentacle; z — zooid; st — stalk.
(up to several tens in Discophrya ochthebii Matthes, 1954) may occur in inversogemmin suctorians.
Life cycle and development. Just like other sessile ciliates suctorians as a rule reproduce by different modes ofbudding. Their life cycle consists of a free-swimming larval stage (swarmer) that (except vermigemmins) possesses locomotor ciliature. The morphology of suctorian swarmers is less diverse than that of trophonts. Still attempts at their classification have been made (Guilcher, 1948a, 1951; Batisse, 1994).
The reproduction by monotomy is retained in parapodophrians, parasitic sphaerophryans, phalacrocleptid suctorians as well as in intestine inhabitants. Certain parasitic species (for example, Sphaerophrya parameciorum Maupas, 1881) reproduce by both monotomy and budding (Jankowski, 1963).
In some tokophryid suctorians trophotomy or reactive budding may occur under adverse conditions. In the course of trophotomy the entire trophont generates locomotor ciliature and then breaks away from the stalk. However, it is strictly speaking not reproduction, as it does not result in an increase in the number of individuals.
The swarmer attaches to a substrate suitable for settlement. Shortly after settling, it undergoes metamorphosis involving resorption of the ciliature and development of the stalk, lorica (if present) and tentacles from the tentacle anlages (Bardele, 1970; Dovgal, 2002).
The modes of suctorian reproduction hold much systematic significance and will be discussed below.
Feeding. Suctorian ciliates capture and devour their prey by tentacles. No less that 10 hypotheses of the functioning of suctorian tentacles can be enumerated (Hertwig, 1875; Plate, 1886; Eismond, 1891; Collin, 1912; Penard, 1920a; Kahl, 1931; Kormos, 1938a; Kitching, 1952; Hull, 1961; Bardele, 1972, etc.). A full consideration of most of them is contained in M. Canella’s (1957) monograph, many of the hypotheses being mainly of historical interest.
Suctorian ciliates exhibite a certain selectivity as regards food objects (Canella, 1957). Free-swimming ciliates are the basic prey of suctorians. Capture of flagellates and amoebae has also been observed on some occasions.
The origin of the group. The origin of the suctorians has been discussed by many authors. The hypothesis of the origin of the suctorians from rhynchodids is most widely accepted at present (Batisse, 1994). However, as shown below, the above mentioned proposals cannot be reconciled with some morphological features of suctorians.
Systematic problems. There are several versions of the suctorian classification which differ essentially in
taxonomic rank of the group, numbers of subordinate taxa, etc. (Jankowski, 1978, 1980, 1981; Matthes et al., 1988; Batisse, 1994; Dovgal, 1996).
There are two main approaches to the derivation of the Suctorea system.
D. Matthes and his followers believe that the classification should be elaborated on the basis of non-adaptive characters. Naturally, the adoption of such a limited group of characters hampers the development of a rational classification. Furthermore, the problem of non-adaptive nature of morphological characters is ambiguous. This seems to be the reason why D. Matthes did not necessarily use the principles proclaimed in regard to suctorians. In particular, the shape of macronucleus was not used in suctorian taxonomy (Matthes et al., 1988).
Another approach to construction of the Suctorea classification was stated by A.V. Jankowski (1978, 1980, 1981). This author has proceeded from the assumption that if the organisms differ from the characteristics of their group only by one sufficient character they must be classified in separate taxon. Only presence or absence of a character may be used as a basic guideline for classification, and not the degree of character distinction.
Several other versions of the Suctorea classification (Corliss, 1979; Dovgal, 1996, etc.) might be considered as compromise settlements. However, the recent classification of A. Batisse (1994) is worth special consideration. The author has proposed to discriminate three suctorian orders that differ by the mode of budding. For representatives of the order Podophryida Jankowski, 1973 exogemmy without any invaginations (“heteromorphic division”) is characteristic. The order Exotropida Batisse, 1994 includes the forms with exogemmy that starts with invagination of the cortex (mainly ephelotins and ophryodendrids). Finally, internal budding of the representatives of Entotropida Batisse, 1994 begins with invagination. As a result, the suctorians with both ciliary and non-ciliated swarmers fall into Exotropida and those with internal and external budding (parapodophryans, thecacinetins, etc.), into Entotpopida. This classification constitutes a radical departure from A.V. Jankowski’s, D. Matthes’ and our views on Suctorea classification.
The versions of suctorian classification by A.V. Jankowski (1980), D. Matthes with co-authors (1988) and A. Batisse are summarised below.
Classification of A.V. Jankowski (1980):
Class Suctoria Claparede et Lachmann, 1858 Subclass 1. Tomogenea Jankowski, 1978 Order 1. Podophryida Jankowski, 1967
Order 2. Metacinetida Jankowski, 1978 Order 3. Paracinetida Jankowski, 1978 Order 4. Urnulida Jankowski, 1978 Order 5. Allantosomatida Jankowski, 1978 Order 6. Ophryocephalida Jankowski, 1978 Order 7. Tachyblastonida Jankowski, 1978 Subclass 2. Vermigenea Jankowski, 1978 Order 1. Spelaeophryida Jankowski, 1978 Order 2. Dendrosomidida Jankowski, 1978 Order 3. Thecacinetida Batisse, 1975 Order 4. Ophryodendrida Jankowski, 1975 Suborder 1. Asteriferina Jankowski, 1978 Suborder 2. Stylostomatina Jankowski, 1978 Suborder 3. Ophryodendrina Jankowski, 1975 Subclass 3. Endogenea Collin, 1912 Order 1. Acinetida Raabe, 1964 Suborder 1. Tokophryina Jankowski, 1978 Suborder 2. Acinetina Raabe, 1964 Order 2. Trichophryida Jankowski, 1978 Order 3. Dendrosomatida Jankowski, 1975 Suborder 1. Dendrosomatina Jankowski, 1978 Suborder 2. Stylophryina Jankowski, 1978 Order 4. Pseudogemmida Jankowski, 1978 Order 5. Endosphaeriida Jankowski, 1978 Subclass 4. Evaginogenea Jankowski, 1978 Order 1. Discophryida Jankowski, 1975 Order 2. Dendrocometida Raabe, 1964 Subclass 5. Neotenea Jankowski, 1978 Order 1. Cyathodiniida Jankowski, 1978
Suctoria incertae sedis
Order 1. Phalacrocleptida Jankowski, 1978
Classification of D. Matthes and others (1988):
Order Suctoria
Suborder Endogenea Collin, 1912 Family Tokophryidae Jankowski, 1978 Family Acinetidae Stein, 1859 Family Acinetopsidae Jankowski, 1978 Suborder Evaginogenea Jankowski, 1978 Family Discophryidae Collin, 1912 Suborder Exogenea Collin, 1912 Family Podophryidae Butschli, 1889 Family Metacinetidae Butschli, 1889 Family Ephelotidae Kent, 1880 Family Tachyblastonidae Grell, 1970 Family Thecacinetidae Matthes, 1956 Family Spelaeophryidae Batisse, 1975 Family Ophryodendridae Stein, 1867
Classification of A. Batisse (1994):
Subclass Suctoria Claparede et Lachmann, 1858 Order Podophryida Jankowski, 1973
Suborder Podophryina Jankowski, 1973 Family Podophryidae Haeckel, 1866 Family Paracinetidae Jankowski, 1978 Family Severonidae Jankowski, 1981 Family Phalacrocleptidae Kozloff, 1966 Suborder Metacinetina Jankowski, 1978 Family Metacinetidae Butschli, 1889 Family Urnulidae Fraipont, 1878 Order Exotropida Batisse, 1994 Suborder Ephelotina Raabe, 1964 Family Ephelotidae Kent, 1880 Suborder Ophryodendrina Batisse, 1975 Family Rhabdophryidae Jankowski, 1970 Family Stylostomatidae Batisse, 1975 Family Lecanophryidae Jankowski, 1973 Family Ophryodendridae Stein, 1867 Family Spelaeophryidae Batisse, 1975 Order Entotropida Batisse, 1994
Suborder Thecacinetina Batisse, 1975 Family Thecacinetidae Matthes, 1956 Family Corynophryidae Jankowski, 1981 Family Parapodophryidae Jankowski, 1973 Family Tachybalstonidae Grell, 1950 Family Allantosomatidae Jankowski, 1978 Suborder Acinetina Raabe, 1964 Family Acinetidae Stein, 1859 Family Tokophryidae Jankowski, 1978 Family Trichophryidae Fraipont, 1878 Family Endosphaeriidae Jankowski, 1978 Suborder Dendrocometina Raabe, 1964 Family Dendrocometidae Haeckel, 1866 Family Stylocometidae Jankowski, 1978 Suborder Discophryina Batisse, 1975 Family Discophryidae Collin, 1912 Family Cyathodiniidae da Cunha, 1914
It can be seen that suctorians remain a relatively poorly known taxon. For example, in our estimation about 100 suctorian species have not been observed since their discovery. There is no consensus of opinion among ciliatologists regarding the origin, taxonomical rank and position of this group within Ciliophora. Currently the data on phylogenetical reconstructions in the taxon are practically not used in discussions concerning suctorian systematics.
This paper reviews 20 years of the author’s investigations on suctorians. Using the materials collected during that time and generalizing all literary data available, the author has proposed original hypotheses of suctorian origin and the main regularities of the taxa evolution. The new scheme of phylogeny of Suctorea has been elaborated. On the basis of this research the classification of Suctorea has been revised.
CHAPTER 1. THE ORIGIN OF SUCTORIAN CILIATES AND THE TAXONOMIC POSITION OF THE GROUP
The advancement of concepts of the origin of suctorians
The feeding by tentacles of a characteristic morphology has always been believed to be the most characteristic feature of suctorians. Correspondingly, the search for the origin of the group was reduced to establishing the origin of this organelle by the majority of authors.
Early investigators believed that suctorians had affinity with heliozoans. In particular, R. Sand (1899) argued that the tentacles of suctorians were homologous to the axopodians of heliozoans. In contrast, other authors (Ehrenberg, 1838; Dujardin, 1841; Claparede and Lachmann, 1859, 1861; Hertwig, 1875; Fraipont, 1877, 1878; Plate, 1888) believed that the tentacles were novel organelles, characteristic of Suctoria alone.
It was also conjectured (Gegenbaur, 1870, cited after Canella, 1957; Hickson, 1903) that the suctorian tentacles were homologous to the cilia of ciliated protozoans and were derived from the cilia by means of «progressive differentiation». This concept was for some time supported even with the results of electron microscopy. M. Rudzinska and K.R. Porter (1953) detected the nine microfibrilles surrounding the tentacle axonema in Tokophrya infusionum (Stein, 1859). In the authors’ opinion, the correspondence of the number of fibrilles in the tentacle to the number of doublets of microtubules in a cilium testifies to a common origin of these organelles.
It was the opinion of O. Butschli’s (1889) that suctorian tentacles were derived from the cytostome of carnivorous mobile ciliates by means of its special rearrangment. At first, a sole tentacle originated as an adaptation to the feeding by suction of prey, then the polymerization of the “mouth opening” took place.
B. Collin (1912) has supplemented the Butschlian hypothesis, suggesting that the necessity to consume the prey that is predator-size or even larger was the reason of the origin the tentacles. B. Collin also discussed the possible simultaneous origin of several tentacles from the cytopharynx of peritrichs and supposed that suctorian tentacles might be novel formations that have originated concurrently with regression of the cytostome.
Of prime importance was the description of rhynchodid ciliates by L. Plate (1888). This author found two species from the genus Hypocoma Gruber, 1884 (named Acinetoides by L. Plate) that are parasites of marine ciliates. In L. Plate’s opinion hypocomes
are an intermediate link between suctorians and other ciliates because they have both somatic ciliature and tentacles and reproduce by binary fission and not by budding.
O. Butschli (1889) believed that this affinity was possible. In contrast, R. Sand (1899) reasoned that Hypocoma was not an intermediate form but the result of adaptation to parasitism. B. Collin (1912) anticipated that Hypocomidae Butschli, 1889 were derived from the ephelotid suctorians by means of neoteny.
E. Chatton and A. Lwoff (1939) grouped hypocomes with some related forms in the order Rhyn-chodida Chatton et Lwoff, 1939. It was E. Chatton’s and A. Lwoff’s opinion that whereas infraciliature of rhynchodids involved bipolar kineties, apolar or circumpolar kineties were characteristic of suctorians. Assumptions of the affinity between suctorians and rhynchodids were for some time rejected.
F. Stein (1867) was the first who paid attention to the similarity between the hunting tentacles of some hymnostomates and suctorian tentacles. C. Meresch-kowsky (1882, 1883) believed that the carnivorous planktonic tentaculate hymnostomates from the genus Mesodinium Stein, 1862 are intermediate between Suctoria and other ciliates. In J. Entz’s (1883) opinion suctorians undoubtedly derived from ciliates ofthe genus Actinobolina Strand, 1926 (named Actinobolus Stein, 1867). Further still, this author reasoned that Actino-bolina was a possible suctorian swarmer. O. Butschli (1889) also did not rule out some affinity between Actinobolina, Mesodinium and Suctoria.
Although A. Kahl (1934) took into consideration unquestionable likeness between the tentacles of hypocomid and suctorian ciliates, yet he eliminated Hypocomidae as the possible ancestors of Suctoria. A. Kahl (1931) believed that suctorian tentacles derived not from the cytostome but from the hunting tentacles of Prostomata Schewiakoff, 1896. He conceived that the tentacles of Mesodinium, Actinobolina, other tentaculate Prostomata and suctorian tentacles are «amazingly similar in appearance». The ciliate which is the most similar to suctoreans is Legendrea belle-rophon Penard, 1914. In A. Kahl’s view Dactylochlamys pisciformis Lauterborn, 1901 is similar to the swarmers of suctorian ciliate Parapodophrya soliformis (Lauterborn, 1901) (see Fig. 19, A) to the point where it might be confused with them.
In A. Kahl’s view, the tentacles of suctorians represent the final result of evolution process, which traces back to the origin of trichocysts in ectoplasm of
Pseudoprorodon Blochmann, 1886. The phylogenetic lineage of tentaculous Ciliophora (Spathidiidae Kahl, 1929 and Didiniidae Poche, 1913) has originated from the species of Pseudoprorodon devoid of trichocysts. Some Pseudoprorodon species with trichocysts was in turn the ancestor of actinobolin ciliates on the one hand, and, on the other hand, of Dactylochlamys Lauterborn, 1901, Enchelyomorpha Kahl, 19301, Peitiada mirabilis Frenzel, 1892 and the most primitive suctorians — Parapodophrya Kahl, 1931.
Kahl’s concept had been rather popular before the electron microscopic investigations disclosed that there was no likeness in morphology of suctorian and actinobolin tentacles (Holt and Corliss, 1973).
Owing to application of the advanced silver impregnation technique I. Guilcher (1947, 1948a, 1948b, 1950a,1950b, 1951) established the bipolarity of suctorian kineties. Based on this evidence it was concluded (Faure-Fremiet and Guilcher, 1947) that there was no longer any barrier for considering rhynchodids and suctorians as relatives. The suctorians were transferred into Holotricha Stein, 1859 as a result (Corliss, 1964; Raabe, 1964).
Thus the majority of specialists reverted to the idea of rhynchodids as possible ancestors of suctorians. It has taken place despite the fact that I. Guilcher (1951) agreed with Chatton’s and Lwoffs (1949) opinion that there was no point in discussing a possible homology between suctorian and rhynchodid tentacles in the absence of information about functioning of these organelles and their formation during ontogeny.
A.V. Jankowski (1978) has believed that not podophryids are most primitive suctorians (as might be expected) but ephelotids and discophryids, their swarmer ciliature pattern being similar to rhynchodid ciliature. He also proposed (Jankowski, 1980) to combine rhynchodids and suctorians in the superclass Rhynchosuctorida Jankowski, 1980.
In the new revised system of Ciliophora (Puytorac, de, et al., 1993) both rhynchodid and suctorian ciliates are classified in the class Phyllopharyngea de Puytorac et al., 1974 in the subphylum Epiplasmata de Puytorac et al., 1993 as the subclasses Rhynchodia Chatton et Lwoff, 1939 and Suctoria correspondingly. The systematic position is in agreement with the tradition to consider the two groups as related.
In our opinion it is profitable to consider the tentacles of suctorians and rhynchodids both in respect both to morphology and the functioning of these organelles. It is also interesting to discuss the feeding ogranelles of representatives of several other carnivorous protists.
The morphology and functioning of feeding organelles of suctorians and some other carnivorous and parasitic protists
A typical suctorian tentacle is a cylindrical cell protuberance furnished with a distal bulge (knob). The tentacles are usually 1-2 |j,m thick but their length may exceed 100 |j,m (Bardele, 1974). Early investigators mentioned the «inner canal» of tentacle by which the suction of prey proceeded.
M. Rudzinska (1965) has discovered that the «canal» (axonema) consists of a pattern of microtubules. The number of microtubules may vary in different species of Suctoria. There are, for example, 49 microtubules in Tokophrya infusionum (Rudzinska, 1965), 56 in Acineta tuberosa Ehrenberg, 1834 (Bardele and Grell, 1967) and from 200 to 400 in Ephelota gemmipara (Hertwig, 1875), Dendrocometesparadoxus Stein, 1851 and Choanophrya infundibulifera (Hartog, 1881) (Batisse, 1966; Bardele, 1972; Hitchen and Butler, 1973). However the general arrangement of microtubules remains the same and is unique among feeding structures of the ciliates (Lynn and Foissner, 1994).
The suctorian tentacle has two layers of microfibrilles in axonema (Fig. 3, A). The outer layer is cylindrical and formed from microtubules that are separated from each other. The inner layer is arranged in several arm-bearing microtubular ribbons or folds that slightly overlap.
The cylindrical part of tentacle is covered with an envelope. The envelope is an extension of the cell cortex and includes cellular and alveolar membranes, glycocalyx and epiplasm.
In the knob (under perilemma) several short extrusomes named haptocysts are spaced (Rudzinska, 1965; Bardele and Grell, 1967; Batisse, 1967, 1994). Haptocysts are similar to toxicysts and are considered as a variaty of the latter (Hausmann, 1978).
The suctorial tube (tentacle) of rhynchodids is also a cell protuberance with a distal knob (Fig. 3, B, C). The knob is coated with a membrane containing numerous pores (Lom and Kozloff, 1968; Puytorac, de, 1994)2. There is an axonema consisting of one microtubular layer. The microtubules are arranged in such a manner that they form several pleats (Fig 3, D). The axonema penetrates deep into cell body. The extrusomes of Rhynchodia (trichocysts or hapto-trichocysts) are located near the base of the tentacle. Their ejection has never been observed and their function remains a mystery (Puytorac, de, 1994).
1 Enchelyomorpha is in fact a suctorian ciliate (Foissner et al., 1995; Foissner and Foissner, 1995) .
2 It is likely that these are not true pores but this needs further investigations.
Consequently, distinct similarities between the morphology of suctorian and rhynchodid tentacles are in existence. At the same time, there are several differences that should be considered. For example, the axonema of the rhynchodid suctorial tube contains only one microtubular layer and the knob lacks extrusomes.
M. Rudzinska (1965) was the pioneer investigator who proposed the idea of the important role of microtubules in suctorian feeding (at the expense of peristaltic microwaves of the microtubules). However,
C. Bardele’s (1972, 1974) proposals are widely accepted to date.
Fig. 4. The initial phases (schematic drawing) of prey ingestion in Didinium nasutum Muller, 1786 (A, after Wessenberg and Antipa, 1970) and suctorians (B, after Bardele, 1972).
Fig. 3. The structure (schematic drawing) of the tentacles of suctorian (A, according to Bardele, 1972) and rhynchodid ciliates (B and C, according to Lom and Koz-loff, 1968). Abbreviations: mt -microtubules; t - trichocysts; h -haptocysts.
This author considered the tentacle of D. paradoxus as a model and attached much importance to interactions between the microtubules of the tentacle and the membrane of prey.
C. Bardele (1974) believed that the distal end of suctorian tentacle functions like the cytostome of gymnostome ciliates. The feeding process in Suctoria begins from the invagination of the knob membrane with the prey’s cytoplasm inward the tentacle due to a motion of projections found on several microtubules of the inner layer in the distal end of the tentacle (Fig.
4, B). The outer layer of microtubules appears to act as a bearing structure.
In I. Lom’s and E. Kozloffs’ (1968) view, the rhynchodids, alternatively, feed by osmosis through the pores in the knob of suctorial tube. A more recent publication (Puytorac, de, 1994) has to do with external digestion. Thus, the structure of suctorial tube in rhynchodids precludes the feeding of the type characteristic of carnivorous ciliates include carnivorous suctorians. The knob is submerged into a host tissue (gill filaments, hepatopancreas) or cell body. Living rhynchodids have been observed to change their localization freely (Bower and Meyer, 1993). Thus, the microtubular axonema in rhynchodid tentacle is probably acting as a bearing structure only.
Consequently, the tentacles in suctorian and rhynchodid ciliates operate in a distinctly different manner.
On the contrary, there is much more similarity in morphology and function between feeding organelles of suctorian ciliates and several unrelated carnivorous protists.
M. Canella (1957) has given several examples of protists that feed in the same manner as suctorians. He has mentioned Bodo sp. and one marine dinoflagellate species. In fact, the phagotrophic dinoflagellate
Fig. 5. The schematic drawing of the katablepharid conoid (A, according to Mylnikov et al., 1998) and suctorian tentacle (B, according to Lee et al., 1991). Abbreviations: mt — microtubules; pm — plasma membrane.
Gymnodinium fungiforme Anissimova, 1926 ingests prey cytoplasm through a highly extensible organelle named peduncle and analogous to the tentacle of suctorian ciliates (Spero, 1982).
A.P. Mylnikov et al. (1998) have indicated that the feeding mechanism of carnivorous katablepharid flagellates closely parallels that of suctorians. The feeding apparatus in katablepharids likewise contains two microtubular layers (Fig. 5). In this connection it should be noted that katablepharid flagellates are possible ancestors of ciliates (Lee et al., 1991). It was therefore speculated that the system of cortical alveoli in ciliates and Katablepharis spp. is similar (Lee and Kurgens, 1992). In fact this is undeniably a case of convergence (Patterson, 1994).
The origin and systematic position of suctorian ciliates (the author’s concept)
In our opinion the question how the free-living carnivorous suctorian ciliates could have derived from specialised parasites ofciliates ofmollusc mantle complex such as Rhynchodia is still open. The opposite lineage — from preying to parasitism — seems more likely to us.
It is highly probable that the quest for structures, homologous to the suctorian tentacle is more promising
in mobile ciliates that feed on the predator-size prey than in forms (such as rhynhodids, cyrtophorins, etc.) with specialized tentacle-like organelles.
Didinium nasutum (Muller, 1786) is one of the species best studied in this respect (Wessenberg and Antipa, 1970) and may serve as a model.
Prey organisms suitable for Didinium Stein, 1867 are ciliates, flagellates, amoebae and even turbellarians. The feeding apparatus of Didinium consists of cell protuberance (proboscis or rostrum) (Fig. 6) furnished with two types of extrusomes — long trichocysts and short toxicysts (pexicysts). Along the length of the proboscis runs the nemadesma. In addition there are cortical ribbons of microtubules and a fibrous ring. On the basis of movements of these fibrillar structures the proboscis is retracted and screwed in the cell body together with prey (Fig. 4, A).
We believe that the mechanism of prey ingestion by Didinium is close to that in the suctorian tentacle, since the rostrum contractile structures operate similarly to the inner microtubular layer of the tentacle (Fig. 4, A, B). The nemadesma of proboscis also involves microtubules (Holt, 1972) and resembles the axonema of the tentacle whereas pexicysts may be homologous to haptocysts.
For the conversion from swallowing of large prey to more economic suction only a functional substitution of the nemadesmal fibrilles was probably necessary. It is likely that in a certain mobile ciliate with the ingestion mechanism similar to that of Didinium the outer part of microfibrilles was no longer contractile but began to work as a bearing structure. The inner part of microfibrilles retained contractility. As a result, the structure might have started functioning like katablepharid conoid or dinoflagellate peduncle.
The intensification of the function ofprey capturing possibly proceeded by means of the elongation of the organelle plus the polymerization and accumulation of the extrusomes. The latter process, in turn required the increasing of the surface of the organelle tip and decreasing of the number of extrusomes. In such a manner the knob of the tentacle and haptocysts were possibly developed.
The progressive evolution of protists is associated with the increase ofbody size. Such increase may cause a drop in the effectiveness of cell organelles or organelle systems functioning. This drop might be avoided either by the increase of organelle size or by the organelle number multiplication. The second way (polymerisation) has been used by protists much more often, as noted already by V.A. Dogiel (1951).
Thus there is a good probability that the tentacle has originated even in planktonic ancestors ofSuctoria, but polymerization of the feeding organelles was
Fig. 6. The structure of the proboscis of Didinium nasutum Muller, 1786 (according to Wessenberg and Antipa, 1970). A — the general view (SEM); B — structure (schematic drawing). Abbreviations: mt — microtubules; t — trichocysts; p — pexicysts; tr — prey trichocysts.
associated with the transition to the sessile mode of life (Bardele, 1974; Dovgal, 2000).
In the recent version of the phylum Ciliophora system (Puytorac, de, et al., 1993) didiniids are relegated in subphylum Filicorticata de Puytorac et al., 1993, class Litostomatea Small et Lynn, 1981, order Spathidiida Foissner et Foissner, 1988 as the suborder Didiniina Jankowski, 1978.
The predominance both of ectoplasmic and endoplasmic filaments for the forming of cortex is characteristic for all Filicorticata representatives. The somatic ciliature is of the same type and consists of monokineties. Oral cilia may be absent, but their infraciliature is built up both by monokineties and dikineties. These kineties are formed during ontogenesis by involvement of the anterior parts of somatic kineties (telokinetal stomatogenesis). The prevailing view today is that the possession of dikineties is an ancestral characteristic (Eisler and Fleury, 1995). In this case, somatic monokineties are secondary in filicorticates.
In addition, the reduction of somatic ciliature up to one or two transversal kineties is characteristic for didiniids. There are three types of extrusomes: mucocysts, trichocysts and pexicysts.
As already noted, both suctorians and rhynchodids reside in the subphylum Epiplasmata. It is the opinion of P. de Puytorac’s et al. (1993) that the presence of both somatic and oral dikineties and monokineties with
kinetodesmal fibrilles is characteristic for all representatives of the subphylum. The reduction of trophont ciliature are characteristic of suctorians and sphaeno-phryid rhynchodides. In the general case the ciliature consists of two main ciliary fields except for Suctoria swarmers that have only one main field of cilia. A well-developed epiplasm under the alveolar layer is characteristic of Ciliostomatophora de Puytorac et al., 1993 too. Stomatogeneses are telokinetal, parakinetal and apokinetal. For all taxa of the superclass Ciliosto-matophora a specialised microtubular skeleton (cytopharynx) surrounding the phagoplasm is characteristic. It is believed that in suctorians an identical structure is present as the axonema of the tentacle (Batisse, 1994). The presence of the subkinetal microtubules in the cortex is a common feature of ciliostomatophores.
As evidenced by the above, several suctorian characteristics such as the pattern of the swarmer ciliature or the analogue of cytopharynx slightly deflect from the features common for the superclass or at least for the class Phyllopharyngea.
Ciliature is developed in swarmers of Suctoria only (except cyathodiniids). The trophonts invariably (except Phalacrocleptes Kozloff, 1966) bear kineto-somes close to the pore of the contractile vacuole or form an anarchic field on the apical surface of the cell body.
There are additional microfilaments in the cortex of several suctorian species. For example, there may be interrupted (Heliophrya De Saedeleer et Tellier, 1930, Trichophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) or continuous (Dendrocometes Stein, 1851, Cyclophrya Gonnert, 1935, Allantosoma Gassovsky, 1918) layers of microtubules acting as bearing structures. There are additional microtubules near the stalk in Tokophrya Butschli, 1889 or in the actinophore of Loricodendron hollandei (Batisse, 1969) (Sundermann and Paulin, 1981, Batisse, 1994). Several structures that closely resemble each other are observed in Stylocometes Stein, 1876 (Maccagno, 1934), Stylostoma Milne, 1886 and Asterifer Jankowski, 1967 (Collin, 1912; Guilcher, 1950b). However, no subkinetal microtubules or barren basal bodies were found in swarmers of Enchelyomorpha (Foissner and Foissner, 1995).
At the same time, some structures of the cortex are similar in didiniids and suctorians. It should be noted that existing differences between the groups (essential at first glance) refer to the composition of the cortex.
In the diagnoses of ciliate subphyla, however, we deal with the predominance of different types of microfilaments. In particular, there is epiplasm in all ciliates, but it is weakly developed in the taxa that are outside Epiplasmata.
In our opinion the provision of suctorian cortex with subkinetal microtubules is a more distinctive property, which hampers the idea on the affinity between didiniids and suctorians. It should be mentioned that as a result of small-subunit rDNA investigations Didinium and suctorian species were found in separate (though adjacent) clades (Riley and Katz, 2001). However, the possibility, even if unlikely,
CHAPTER 2. SOME REGULARITIES
The development of the mode of budding is most frequently considered as a basic tendency in suctorian evolution (Collin, 1912; Kormos and Kormos, 1957; Kormos, 1959, etc.). Rarely the tendency to the body branching was also discussed (Jankowski, 1972). The type of budding ignored by the latter author in the work mentioned.
In our opinion the development of Suctorea was associated with their transition to the obligate sessile mode of life, i.e., with occupation of the hydrodynamic boundary layer as an adaptive zone (Dovgal, 2000).
Similar to other sessile protists, the structures affording the interaction with environment have evolved in suctorians (Dovgal, 2000). The idea about the evolution of mainly cortical structures in ciliates (Puytorac, de, et al., 1993; Eisler and Fleury, 1995) is
of the origin of suctorians from some ancestor common with didiniids can not be ruled out.
Nonetheless, the origin of suctorians from mobile carnivorous ciliates that feed in the same manner as didiniids is highly plausible.
Consequently, the podophryid suctorians that retained the capacity for binary fission and a simple mode of symmetry may be thought of as the most primitive group of these ciliates. The podophryid shape of the cell body may be probably considered as initial for suctorians.
As discussed above, Suctoria are classified in the class Phyllopharyngea (Pyutorac, de, et al., 1993; Pyutorac, de, 1994) as a subclass. In the context of our hypothesis on the origin of the group the position of Suctoria in the same taxon as Rhynchodia and Chonotrichia Wallengren, 1895 appears artificial. However, the presence of subkinetal microtubules in suctorian cortex may suggest the affinity between Suctoria and other representatives of Phyllopharyngea.
In our opinion some way out would be found if the group is left in the superclass Ciliostomatophora with the rank of the class Suctorea Claparede et Lachmann,
1858.
As a result the system of the subphylum takes the following form:
Subphylum Epiplasmata de Puytorac et al., 1993 Superclass Ciliostomatophora de Puytorac et al., 1993 Class Phyllopharyngea de Puytorac et al., 1974 Class Suctorea Claparede et Lachmann, 1858 Superclass Membranellophora Jankowski, 1975 Class Nassophorea Small et Lynn, 1985 Class Oligohymenophorea de Puytorac et al., 1974
IN THE EVOLUTION OF SUCTOREA
probably close to the above viewpoint. The protection of protomit from environmental influence is a fundamental tendency in evolution of suctorian reproduction.
The evolution of budding
In almost all taxa of sessile ciliates (including Suctorea) the transition from binary fission (mono-tomy) to budding can be followed. In the case of the loss of motility the transition to irregular fission with formation of migratory stage was beneficial. It gave additional benefits since the parental individual did not require transformation. Thus it remained active and retained its localization, which was important in conditions of topical competition (Dovgal, 2000).
Fig. 7. Hypothetical diagram of the evolution of reproduction modes in Suctorea (according to Dovgal, 1996, modif.). Aa — binary fission (Ab — division of Sphaerophrya parameciorum Maupas, 1881, according to Jankowski, 1963); Ba — exogemmic budding (Bb — budding of Paracineta livadiana Mere-schkowsky, 1881); Ca — vermigemmy (Cb — budding of Ophryodendron pre-nanti Duboscq, 1925, according to Kahl, 1934); Da — semi-circumvaginative budding (Db — reproduction of Pseudo-gemmides globosa Kormos, 1935); Ea — endogemmic budding (Eb — reproduction of Acineta nitocrae Dovgal, 1984); Fa — inversogemmy (Fb — budding of Discophrya lichtensteinii Claparede et Lachmann, 1859).
Binary fission is retained in podophryid suctorians such as Parapodophrya or parasitic Sphaerophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 (Fig. 7, Ab). Phala-crocleptes, the parasite of sabellids and allantosomids, inhabitants of the intestine of the horses, elephants and rhinoceroses reproduce only by monotomy (Fig. 8).
Ephelotids, metacinetids, paracinetids, etc. reproduce by exogemmic budding. There are several modes of exogemmy that are characterized by the
В
Fig. 8. The reproduction of (A) Allantosoma intes-tinalis Gassowski, 1918 (according to Strelkow, 1939) and (B) Phalacrocleptes verruciformis Kozloff, 1966 (according to Kozloff, 1966).
number of forming buds (monogemmy or polygemmy) as well as by the bud position on the parental cell.
For example, for marine paracinetid and ephelotid suctorians the apical position of bud is characteristic.
In contrast, in the freshwater metacinetids the tomit is generated laterally on the trophont body. The parasitic suctorians from the genus Manuelophrya Matthes, 1988 and some relative genera reproduce in a similar manner.
One further characteristic feature ofbudding in the suctorians is the generation of tomit in the partial invagination of trophont cortex (semi-circumvaginative budding). As a result the swarmer in the invagination is probably more protected.
For the group of marine (with several exceptions) suctorians that mainly live on the harpacticoid copepods (Fernandez-Leborans and Tato-Porto, 2000) a distinctive type of budding called vermigemmy is characteristic. The swarmers of these suctorians are devoid of ciliature. These swarmers perform the function of dispersion, crawling onto the new hosts over the surfaces of the copulating copepods (Dovgal and Kochin, 1997). There is a special larval adhesive organelle (sucker) for this purpose. Vermigemmy is characteristic of Ophryodendron (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), Lecanophrya (Kahl, 1934), Rhabdophrya (Chatton et Collin, 1910) and some others.
For most suctorian species endogenous budding is characteristic. This mode of budding starts with an invagination of a part ofthe cortex (Bardele, 1970). This
cortical region bears several basal bodies (the generative area). Next the brood pouch with the swarmer anlage is formed in the mother cell. Both monogemmy and polygemmy are characteristic too. The acinetids, trichophryids, endosphaeriids, etc. reproduce in this manner.
Finally, inversogemmy is characteristic of several genera (Discophrya, Dendrocometes, etc.) that are mainly commensals of freshwater insects and crustaceans.
During inversogemmy a deep invagination of the cortex (the brood pouch) is generated by means of its allometric growth. Next the ciliature of the swarmer develops on the pouch surface. After that the invagi-nated cortical fragment rapidly evaginates and is filled by a fragment of parental cytoplasm with the daughter nuclei. Finally the swarmer generated breaks away from the mother cell.
Evolutionary lineages can be modelled at least for exogemmy, vermigemmy and endogemmy.
For example, exogemmy can be easy deduced from monotomy. In podophryid suctorians that retained several modes of budding the swarmer derives the tentacles and kinetosomes for locomotor ciliature from the parental organism.
Further development of reproduction probably went in the direction of tomit protection against external exposure.
The budding area might have become displaced under the lorica (i.e. to the side of the trophont body) in loricate forms. At least a partial inversion of the protomit in a parental cell has possibly taken place in connection with the limitation of space. In this way the ancestors of freshwater metacinetid suctorians and marine paracinetids could have passed over to semi-circumvaginative budding. The latter mode of reproduction is commonly considered as intermediate between exogemmy and endogemmy (Kormos and Kormos, 1957).
In our opinion there is a good probability that in case of metacinetids this mode of budding represents no more than an evolutionary tendency. In the great majority of suctorians that reproduce by endogemmy the budding area is associated with apical rather than lateral body surface. It seems likely that possible ancestors of endogemmin suctorians should be searched among unloricate taxa. In suctorians devoid of lorica the protection of protomit can be achieved by its direct inversion into the trophont body. The progressing of the tendency probably ultimately gave rise to endogemmy.
As for vermigemmy, this mode of reproducton could have developed in connection with suctorians living on water arthropods. As this took place, the problem of
regular moult of the hosts was the most essential for the symbionts. In all likelihood, a certain span of feeding time is required for the commensal before proceeding to reproduction. The swarmers of suctorians do not feed, while the food reserve that have derived from parental cell is probably sufficient for distribution and metamorphosis only. Filter feeders such as peritrichous ciliates can begin to feed almost immediately after attachment. In contrast, carnivorous suctorians must capture the prey, resulting in additional time before the start of the budding. The arthropod larval stages often moult and are unfit for settlement by suctorians.
For example, the absence of suctorians on the nauplial or copepodit stages of harpacticoid copepods while the mature individuals serve as hosts for many suctorian species is probably associated with this factor. On the contrary, larval stages of copepods are very often infected by peritrichous ciliates.
On the contrary, the adult harpacticoids do not moult. This renders harpacticoid copepods most useful as suctorian hosts. As a result a wide variety of suctorian species are specific commensals of different harpacticoid species.
As this take place, the ciliates are exposed to a complex of hydrodynamic factors (Dovgal and Kochin, 1995, 1997). Under these conditions, the swimming of suctorian swarmers in the immediate vicinity of host surface involves difficulties and the transition to crawling appears more beneficial. However, it was concerned with the reduction of swarmer ciliature and advent of larval adhesive structures. In this manner vermigemmy has been developed.
Inversogemmy is characteristic of only freshwater suctorians. As with vermigemmin suctorians, the host-specific species of inversogemmins inhabit exclusively the adults of invertebrates. For example, the majority of discophryid suctorians live on the imago of beetles and bugs. This suggests that the problem of the host moult is essential for these suctorians too.
It is possible that inversogemmy developed in the early exogemmins in connection with inhabiting the mobile hosts. This has aggravated the problem of protomit protection. As with other cases of «internal» budding, the submerging of protomit into the parental cell was the first step.
As an intermediate variant between exogemmy and inversogemmy the reproduction of dendrocometid suctorians may be discussed. The budding of Dendrocometes paradoxus starts with a deep invagination of the cortex and the brood pouch develops as a result. Next the budding that is similar to exogemmy occurs at the brood pouch bottom (Batisse, 1975).
All modes of asexual reproduction listed have formed independently but the ways in which suctorian
ciliates transited to the internal tomit formation remain an open question.
The evolution of adhesive organelles
While giving to protists certain benefits, attachment subjects them to the problems of a counteraction to specific hydrodynamic loads. This specificity is determined by the location of sessile protists within the hydrodynamic boundary layer limits. Our investigation of some species ofSuctorea (Dovgal and Kochin, 1995, 1997) has shown that their variability depends on the distribution of hydrodynamic loads in different sites of the boundary layer. We arrived at the idea that the boundary layer has a determinate spatial structure; the conditions are different in different parts of this layer.
Shear stress, hydrodynamic velocity pressure (integrated force) and other hydrodynamic loads should be mentioned as the most important abiotic factors influencing organisms in a boundary layer. Ubiquitous factors such as temperature, concentration of oxygen, dissolved organic matter, etc. are essential too. The action of all these factors is different in various parts of boundary layer, being conditioned by the spatial structure of the layer (Dovgal, 1998, 2000). The boundary layer represents a complex of potential habitats for protists. On this basis we have formulated the concept of fluid boundary layer as an adaptive zone for these organisms (Dovgal and Kochin, 1995, 1997; Dovgal, 2000).
In our opinion the development ofsuctorian ciliates also proceeds during the process of adaptation to the conditions in different parts of boundary layer. Examples of adaptations abound in Suctorea. In particular, the modes of attachment of suctorian ciliates to the substrates are extremely diverse.
Several suctorian species (for example, Trichophrya) attach to the substrate by the basal part of the body or by the stalk-like cell protuberance. However, the adhesion by means of a tectinous stalk is the most usual.
Two types of lorica are the derivatives of stalk in Suctorea. The tectinous lorica of stalked suctorians is formed by means of allometric grows of the stalk. Semilorica or basotheca, covering only the lower part of the body, belongs to this type. Stylotheca (thecostyle) represents another type. The suctorians with this lorica adhere to the substrate by means of basal part of stylotheca or by their stalk-like protuberance. The zooid adheres to the lorica near the apical aperture.
It is interesting to note that in several families of Suctorea (for example, Periacinetidae Jankowski, 1978) all types of lorica (include mucous one) are present.
A high degree of morphological diversity of the connection between stalk and body is characteristic of
stalked suctorians. Different basal discs and physones protect this area apart from the above mentioned lorica and basotheca. In Tokophrya actinostyla Collin, 1912 and Choanophrya infundibulifera there are several distinctive invaginations of cortex in the zone of junction between stalk and body. These invaginations are filled with tectin (Batisse, 1994) and are analogous to the endostyle of chonotrich ciliates (Dovgal, 1998). There is also a characteristic structure (papilla) in zone of junction between stalk and lorica in several loricate species such as Paracineta patula (Claparede et Lachmann, 1861) and Acineta compressa Claparede et Lachmann, 1859. A particularly complex structure (a frilled collar-like disc) is generated between stalk and body in Tokophrya ornata Gajewskaja, 1933 living on gammarid crustaceans from Lake Baikal.
There is an interesting adhesive organelle (similar to the cinctum of several peritrichous ciliates) in two representatives of genus Erastophrya Faure-Fremiet, 1943. These suctorians grip the peritrich body by two cell extensions (in E. chattoniFaure-Fremiet, 1943; Fig.
27, D) or a single one (in E. wuchangensis Chen, 1964; Fig. 27, E).
In the suctorians of the genus Spongiarcon Jankowski, 1981 (Fig. 23, B) living in the canals and oscula of sponges both stalk and body protuberances are present, with the unique polymerization of the stalk (Jankowski, 1981).
Several suctorian species have lost stalks in transition to the planktonic (Sphaerophrya, Mucophrya pelagica Gajewskaya, 1928) or parasitic (Sphaerophrya, Pseudogemma Collin, 1912, Pottsiocles Corliss, 1960, Phalacrocleptes) modes of life. In these cases the function of temporary (in planktonic species) or permanent (in parasitic species) attachment was transferred to ordinary or modified tentacles.
Apart from permanent adhesive organelles there are also temporary structures for attachment in swarmers of several suctorian species such as the above mentioned sucker in vermigemmins and the perforatorium in parasitic suctorians of the genus Endosphaera Engel-mann, 1876.
A variety of attaching modes in suctorians can be considered as adaptation to different hydrodynamic loads (Dovgal and Kochin, 1995; Dovgal, 1998), which has already been discussed. In our opinion this allows us to consider the evolution of organelles as the process of adaptation to hydrodynamic factors.
Obviously the first problem for the ancestors of sessile suctorian ciliates was that of attachment to a substrate. They were subjected to action of shear stress that effects upon the base of an attached organism. Under these conditions various secretory organelles (for example, scopuloid in Suctorea) have appeared.
Besides the secretion of sticky substances secretion the increase of contact area with a substrate is necessary for a counteraction to shear stress. Hence, forms with an extended body base gained selective advantage.
The particularity of this stage was that attached organisms were located within the limits of the diffusal boundary layer where only molecular diffusion was possible. An uprise above this layer moves the animals into the area of much faster convection diffusion and gives suctorians essential benefits in feeding. In this connection some forms evolved adaptations to raising their body above the substrate. They formed stalks and the function of rising the zooid over the substrate was added to that of attachment. However, this uprise has subjected the organisms to an additional load of the hydrodynamic velocity pressure (integrated force).
During adaptation to the latter the greatest number of structures were generated in suctorians. The value of a hydrodynamic velocity pressure increases together with the body rise over substrate (Dovgal and Kochin,
1997) as well as with an increase of the body diameter (Silvester and Sleigh, 1985). The latter is especially important for sessile protists. For them the tendency to the progressive increase of body size is characteristic. For example, among suctorians the most primitive podophryids have the cell size up to 50 ^m, acinetids up to 150 ^m, ephelotids and stalked discophryids up to 300 ^m. Accordingly the action of an integrated force should sharply increase in the zone ofjunction between stalk and body. Therefore practically all adaptations to this factor are aimed at strengthening this junction. Several specialized structures are formed by means of of apical allometric growth of stalk. Some types of loricas probably also generated in the same way (Dovgal, 1998).
It is necessary to mention that not all suctorians evolved structures for rising the body above the substrate. The couteraction to shear stress requires the enlargement of the base of cell body. The amplification of this function in some groups mostly went by means of formation of flattened body and increase of the body size in order to increase the area of its contact with the substrate. In the area of a conventional diffusion only feeding organelles were mounted. In such a way the characteristic outlines of heliophryid and trichophryid suctorians were probably generated. It might be well to point out that most of these forms (for example, heliophryid suctorians) have wide tectinous adhesive discs and are probably derived from the stalked ancestors.
It is our opinion that body protuberances represent the adaptations to the complex set of hydrodynamic conditions (Dovgal, 1998). The cell protuberances and stalk polymerisation in Spongiarcon variabilis Jan-
kowski, 1981 (Fig. 23, B) is an extreme case of such adaptations.
A set of conditions of similar character is formed around the stalks of sessile ciliates that are often used as substrates by suctorians. The most extreme hydrodynamic conditions are probably associated with inhabiting fishes. There are several ways to increase the strength of adhesion (Dovgal, 1998), but only two of them were realized by Suctorea.
One way is the symmetric allometrical growth of twin protuberances of the basis of the body. Probably in such a way the cinctum of Erastophrya chattoni was generated (Fig. 9, A).
The second way is unilateral allometrical growth of the body protuberance resulting in formation of a bend. A closed ring could gradually be formed at the expense of such a bend. In this way the cinctum in Erastophrya wuchangensis (Fig. 9, B) might have been generated. In our opinion the ingenious way of its formation gives grounds to introduction of a special term “hemicinctum” for this adhesive structure.
On the whole, the evolution of the adhesive structures in Suctorea followed the pattern usual for sessile ciliates: 1) facultative attachment (thygmotaxis); 2) secretion of sticky substances; 3) increase of the attachment area; 4) rise of the body above the substrate with the formation of the adhesive organelles (stalks); 5) formation of structures protecting the zone of stalk and body connection (Dovgal, 1998).
The representatives of various suctorian taxa (with different modes of budding) have independently populated habitats with similar conditions. Analogous adhesive structures have developed in unrelated groups of these ciliates as a result.
The evolution of the feeding apparatus
As discussed above, the suctorian tentacle is probably derived from the feeding apparatus of a certain mobile ciliate that had the ingestion mechanism similar to that of Didinium.
Fig. 9. Schematic drawing of possible ways of the adhesive rings formation in suctorian ciliates (according to Dovgal, 1998, modif.). A — formation of the cinctum in Erastophrya wuchangensis, Chen, 1964; B — formation of the hemicinctum in E. chattoni Faure-Fremiet, 1944.
The suctorian tentacles are widely diversified. A.V. Jankowski (1981) recognizes up to 15 types of the tentacles.
Clavate tentacles (with distal widening or knob) are the most widespread. Clavate tentacles with flared base are characteristic of representatives of Parapodophrya, Lecanophrya (Fig. 21, J) and Lecanophryella Dovgal, 1985 (Fig. 21, K). The tentacles of parasitic suctorians such as Urnula Cl., Lachm, 1861 (Fig. 19, K), Rhynchophrya Collin 1909 (Fig. 28, I), Rhyncheta Zenker, 1866 (Fig.
25, J), etc. are extremely long and agile. The rod-like tentacles are widely distributed in ophryodendrid, pseudogemmid and some other suctorian ciliates. Finally, branched tentacles are characteristic of Shyzactinia Jankowski, 1981 (Fig. 23, A), Dendrocometes (Fig. 29, E) and some genera related to the latter.
Both rod-like and branched tentacles differ from other types of tentacles in their distal end morphology. Unlike clavate tentacles, there is a very thick layer of endoplasm in these tentacles that are uncontractile as a result (Bardele, 1972).
There are several other variations concerning tentacle structure. For example, Slitarcon laevis (Dons, 1918) (Fig. 24, G) in different authors’ opinion has lost tentacles (Curds, 1985a) or its tentacles are very short and probably devoid of axonema (Jankowski, 1986).
The tentacles of allantosomid suctorians that live in intestine of horses are short, clavate and with an axonema that is star-shaped in cross section (Sunder-mann and Paulin, 1981). In commensals of guinea-pig intestine (Cyathodiniidae da Cunha, 1914) the tentacles (endosprits or chilostyles) are very reduced, but with an ordinary shaped axonema and a single haptocyst (Paulin and Corliss, 1969).
There is only one haptocyst also in the tentacle of ectoparasite of sabellid polychaetes Phalacrocleptes verruciformis Kozloff, 1966, but its axonema is reduced down to a single layer (Lom and Kozloff, 1967). It is possible that the tentacles of Phalacrocleptes do not perform the function of feeding and serve for attaching only.
A similar reduction of a part of the tentacles that function as adhesive organelles is also present in Capriniana piscium (Butschli, 1886) inhabiting the gills of freshwater fishes (Batisse, 1994).
There are special funnel-like tentacles in Choano-phrya infundibulifera (Fig. 25, L) inhabiting cyclopid crustaceans and feeding on fluid remains of host’s meals. Haptocysts, a knob and a layer of microtubules are absent in the tentacle (Hitchen and Butler, 1973).
Aside from the adhesive tentacles of Capriniana piscium, there are other examples of functional and morphological differentiation of suctorian tentacles. To illustrate, the basal branched tentacles of Niscometes
peregrinus (Small et Lynn, 1985) (Fig. 29, F) are probably one more case of adhesive organelle. However, morphological differentiation of tentacles is most commonly associated with the separation of functions of prey capture and feeding.
For example (Kahl, 1934), there are both ordinary clavate and lengthened contractile tentacles in podophryid suctorian Luxophrya limbata (Maupas, 1881). The latter are furnished with knobs that bear the most of the haptocysts. These tentacles are specialised in capture and transport of the prey to the ordinary “sucking” tentacles (Kahl, 1934; Batisse, 1994).
An analogous specialization is much more exhibited in Acinetopsis rara Robin, 1879 (Fig. 24, I). This suctorian feeds on Ephelota spp. that is often far greater than the predator. There are one or two hunting tentacles in Acinetopsis Robin, 1879, whereas the remainder of the tentacles are much smaller and bear knobs devoid of haptocysts. The prehensile tentacles are ordinary in structure but, on the contrary, gigantic, very lively and enriched with haptocysts (Grell and Meister, 1982).
In contrast, the hunting tentacles of ephelotid suctorians differ from sucking tentacles both in ultrastructure and genesis. The ephelotid clavate sucking tentacles are morphologically ordinary. The prehensile tentacles are devoid of knobs and their axonema pattern is due to the structure formed by sets of long and shorts semiring chains of microtubules close to each. The axonema begins from special invaginations in macronucleus protrusions and reaches the terminal part of the tentacle (Fig. 10). The haptocysts are numerous along its length (Mikrjukov, 1997).
All modes of tentacles listed (except prehensile tentacle of ephelotids that not homologous to other suctorian tentacles) may be classified into five major groups:
1. The tentacles of Parapodophrya, Lecanophrya, Urnula, etc., the hunting tentacles of Acinetopsis and adhesive tentacles of Capriniana Strand, 1928 that are modifications of the clavate tentacle.
2. The funnel-like tentacles of Choanophrya infundibulifera, that represent a special case of specialisation to the character of food.
3. The tentacles of Manuelophrya, Pseudogemma, Enchelyomorpha, Stylocometes, etc., that may fit into the group of rod-like tentacles. Into this group also the adhesive tentacle of Phalacrocleptes may probably fit. By convention (until electron microscopical investigation) we relegate to rod-like tentacles also the larval organelle of endosphaeriid suctorians — the perforatorium.
4. The endosprits of cyathodiniid suctorians, which are an extreme case of specialization of rod-like tentacles, but must be classified into a separate group.
Fig. 10. The fine structure (schematic drawing) of the prehensile tentacle of Ephelota gemmipara (Hertwig, 1875) (according to Mikrjukov, 1997). Abbreviations: ax — axonema; hc — haptocyst aggregations; ma — macronucleus.
5. The branched tentacles that are characteristic only for dendrocometids and one ophryodendrid genus (Shyzactinia).
Besides tentacles, tentacle-bearing body protuberances called actinophores are often involved into the suctorian feeding apparatus. Conical actinophores situated on the apical body surface are the most widespread. There are also hemispherical, circular and vane-like actinophores. Long contractile actinophores (trunks) of ophriodenrid suctorians are probably the most notable.
Data on the evolution of suctorian tentacles are few in the literature. According to A.V. Jankowski’s (1967b) hypothesis, the feeding apparatus development in Suctorea followed two main directions: towards branching of tentacles and towards their polymerization. The polymerization in turn was rendered possible in three ways: 1) when the body retains its simple outlook (as in acinetids); 2) when the body becomes star-shaped and the body edges become wavy (as in trichophryids); 3) when the body becomes branching (Dendrosoma Ehrenberg, 1838, Dendrosomides Collin, 1906, etc.). In the parasitic suctorian species the feeding apparatus shows a tendency towards oligomerization (Jankowski, 1967b).
We believe that the presence of clavate tentacles in podophryid suctorians and their presence in all large taxa (with different modes of budding) of Suctorea testified to the fact that this mode of tentacles is initial. For example, C.F. Bardele (1972) who investigated the ultrastructure of the tentacles viewed the terminal parts of both rod-like and branched tentacles as reduced knobs of clavate tentacles. In the ramified tentacle of Dendrocometes paradoxus the axonemas of individual branching do not merge beneath the point of ramification (Bardele, 1972). This probably means that ramified tentacles are the result of the confluence of several adjacent rod-like tentacles.
Transition from primary clavate tentacles to rodlike ones and from latter to branched tentacles may be considered as a basic tendency in evolution of the suctorian feeding organelle (Fig. 11). In this way the tentaculous apparatus has formed parallelly in different groups by means of specialization to different food objects or to inhabiting various substrates.
Another tendency is division of functions on the basis of polymerization of the organelle. A typical case is the divergence of the tentacles into sucking and hunting ones, the most prominent example being the prehensile tentacle of Acinetopsis.
In the several groups of suctorians the tentacles have divided into sucking and adhesive ones. However, in contrast with case just mentioned their functional division was associated with the reduction of both extrusomes and the inner layer of axonema.
Finally, in parasitic suctorians the tendency to oligomerization of the tentacles is characteristic. In this way a single tentacle with a reduced axonema evolved independently in manuelophryids (reproducing by exogemmy) and pseudemmids (with endogemmic budding). The endosphaeriids (with endogemmy) that are mainly intracellular parasites of ciliates and also include the parasite of rotifer tissue Tripanococcus rotiferrorum Stein, 1867 (with inversogemmy) lost tentacles and transited to osmotrophy in parallel.
A further consequence of polymerization is the transition from irregular distribution of tentacles on the body surface to their association in fascicles or rows. The formation of ctinophores was also associated with this.
As evidenced by the foregoing, the main tendencies in development of tentacles, budding and adhesive organelles are manifest in different and probably not related groups of suctorians. In our opinion, the transfer to commensalism and parasitism on invertebrate hosts makes played the main role in speciation in Suctorea.
Ancestral suctorians were probably similar to recent podophryids. They have in parallel transited to inhabiting different mobile hosts and various modes of
A B C
Fig. 11. Evolutionary lineage of suctorian tentacles. A — capitate tentacles of Periacineta buckei (Kent, 1882) (SEM, x15000); B — rod-like tentacles of Stylocometes digitatus (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) (SEM, x4400); C — ramified tentacle of Dendrocometesparadoxus Stein, 1851 (SEM, x2000).
budding have been developed. The ensuing development structures proceeded in suctorian taxa with different
of adhesive organelles, feeding apparatus and associated types of asexual reproduction independently.
CHAPTER 3. THE TAXONOMY OF SOME PROBLEMATIC SUCTORIAN GENERA AND SPECIES
Since the publications of identification keys of marine (Kahl, 1934) and freshwater (Matthes et al., 1988) suctorians the revision of suctorian systematics and nomenclature on the generic and species levels has not been conducted. Several important articles on taxonomy of various genera and families have been published at the same time (Curds, 1985a, 1985b, 1985c, 1986, 1987; Rieder, 1985, 1988, etc.). In the last three decades a great number of new genera and species of suctorians have been described. An especially rich variety of taxa has been proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1973a, 1978, 1981, 1982, 1987). Some of the taxa proposed by A.V. Jankowski were taken for granted by other investigators (Batisse, 1994; Dovgal, 1996), but several genera were synonymized or (Matthes et al., 1988) were not mentioned at all.
Prior to the overall revision of suctorian systematics, the taxonomical status and nomenclature of several controversial genera and species should be discussed. The synonymization of suctorian taxonomic names justified by authors (Curds, 1985a, 1985b, 1985c, 1986, 1987; Jankowski, 1987; Matthes et al., 1988; Aescht, 2001) is not discussed here.
Our study of suctorian diagnostic characters disclosed that some of them are impractical, at least for differentiation of genera. For example, the extent of manifestation of several characters (the degree of lorica development, asymmetry of lorica, thickness of its walls, the degree of stalk-like stylotheca protuberance or stalk development and apical stalk widening, etc.) may be associated with the extent to which the tectin secretion proceeds during morphogenesis. These characters are often considerably variable. Such characters as presence or absence of lorica folds and ribs, the shape of trophont cell body and tentacle thickness have possibly evolved independently in different taxa. In this case they do not point at the affinity between these taxa. For this reason we do not accept several genera that were introduced using characters listed.
Arrangement and number of the tentacles or tentacle fascicles may at times be reliable characters for classification of genera (as in allantosomid or acinetid suctorians). At other times they are limited to interspecific variability (as in discophryid and toko-phryid suctorians).
In all instances it is good practice to accept genera if their elevation was founded on a combination of characters and not on a single character.
Genus Sphaerophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859
This genus includes planktonic and parasitic suctorians that are devoid of stalk (Fig. 19, C). Currently this generic name is often used as the younger synonym of Podophrya Ehrenberg, 1834 because of the similarity in cysts morphology and the presence of stalked stages in the life cycle of parasitic sphaero-phrians (Jankowski, 1963). However, in a famous work by Matthes et al. (1988) the genus was accepted as different from Podophrya in absence of stalk and structure of cysts. We also believe that the representatives of Sphaerophrya are different enough from Podophrya to relegate them into a separate genus. The similarity of cyst structure attests the affinity between the genera but is not a good reason for their synony-mization.
The systematic position of Allantosoma multisuctores Van Hoven et al., 1998
A new suctorian species (Allantosoma multisuctores, Fig. 19, D) was reported from the intestine of black and white wild African rhinoceroses (Van Hoven et al.,
1998). From 20 to 24 clavate tentacles unevenly arranged at the cell surface are characteristic for the species. The relative position of tentacles is a generic character in Allantosomatidae Jankowski, 1978. Allantosomid genera with different arrangement of tentacles are accepted by specialists (see Batisse, 1994).
A. multisuctores differs from other allantosomids by the fact that its tentacles are scattered over entire body surface instead of being confined to cell poles. For this reason the species might be even assigned to podophryid suctorians. However, a specific pattern of axonema mictorubules is characteristic for allantosomid suctorians (Sundermann and Paulin, 1981) and it can be assumed that the axonema of A. multisuctores tentacles has a similar pattern. Therefore we believe that A. multisuctores is an allantosomid suctorian and must be relegated to a new genus Vanhovenia gen. n. Generic name is given in honour of Dr. Wouter Van Hoven, University of Pretoria, South Africa.
Genus Vanhovenia Dovgal, gen. n.
The suctorian ciliate with an ellipsoid-like body. Several clavate tentacles are distributed all over the cell body. Macronucleus is spherical and centrally placed.
There is a single contractile vacuole. The new genus differs from related allantosomid genera (Allantosoma Gassowki, 1918, Arcosoma Jankowski, 1967 and Allantoxena Jankowski, 1978) by the arrangement of tentacles and localization in intestine of rhinoceroses instead of equines. Type species: Allantosoma multisuctores Van Hoven et al., 1998 (Fig. 19, D).
Genus Discacineta Jankowski, 1981
The genus Discacineta has been proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for the representatives of the genus Metacineta Butschli, 1889 with stylotheca devoid of a stalk-like protuberance. The type species of the genus is Solenophrya micraster Penard, 1914. Literary data (Rieder, 1985) and our observations demonstrate that the individuals of the type species with short protuberance of lorica can occasionally be found. The rest of the characters are identical with Metacineta. Therefore it is not necessary to elevate a separate genus for these forms. The name Discacineta Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with Metacineta Butschli, 1889.
Genus Deltacineta Jankowski, 1981
The genus Deltacineta has been proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1981, p. 96) for the paracinetid suctorians with laterally flattened stylotheca with a short stalk-like protuberance. The type species of the genus is Deltacineta seticola Jankowski, 1981. On page 94 of the article mentioned a new genus Limnoricus Jankowski,
1981 has been described with the same characters but with stylotheca with a long stalk-like protuberance. It is our opinion that the length of adhesive structure is not a character but only its state. We believe that Deltacineta is a younger synonym of Limnoricus and the species Deltacineta seticola Jankowski, 1981 must be transferred in the genus Limnoricus Jankowski, 1981.
Genus Loricophrya Matthes, 1956
The genus Loricophrya has been elevated by D. Matthes (1956) for several species of Thecacineta Collin, 1909 with unrecognized mode of budding. The type species of the genus is Thecacineta parva Schulz, 1932 (Fig. 20, E).
In our opinion quite a lot of genera might be characterized like this, since budding is not investigated in many suctorian species. Nevertheless, the genus was accepted by many specialists (see Curds, 1987).
More recently A.V. Jankowski (1978) has proposed a new genus Heliotheca Jankowski, 1978 for the «loricate forms with apical tentacles» and with the type species Thecacineta caepula Penard, 1920. The
reproduction of the type species is not investigated and it has been transferred in Loricophrya (Curds, 1987).
D. Matthes’ diagnosis of Loricophrya was supplemented by a morphological character (Curds, 1987). The latter author indicated that the stalk-like protuberance of lorica in loricophryans is shorter than the lorica itself. But Acineta bifaria Stokes, 1887 was transferred in the genus and the type of budding is known for the species. This is in conflict with Matthes’ characteristic of genus, i.e. unknown mode of budding.
A. bifaria reproduces by exogemmic budding with apical protomit position. The swarmer morphology is similar with podophryid or paracinetid suctorians, i.e., its body shape is elongate-cycloid with several longitudinal kineties and tentacles.
It should be mentioned that the same mode of reproduction and bud morphology is characteristic of the suctorian Solenophrya sacculus Penard, 1914. It is very similar to A. bifaria, differing only by the absence of the stalk and the characteristic inlay of the lorica. It is possible that the absence of the stalk-like protuberance of the lorica is the case of intraspecific variability as in Metacineta micraster (Penard, 1914) and incrustation of the lorica may be result of its overgrowing by diatoms. It is unquestionable that these species must be assigned to Loricophrya.
Most likely C. Curds (1987) believed that all representatives of Loricophrya have the same mode of reproduction as Acineta bifaria and for this reason discussed the genus as related to Paracineta Collin, 1912. This idea can be supported by the fact that, as W. Foissner (1995) indicated, yet another species of the genus — L. lauterborni(Sondheim, 1929) has the same mode of budding. From the above it is clear that S. sacculus Penard, 1914 must be transferred in Loricophrya 3. The diagnosis of the genus might be improved as follows:
Genus Loricophrya Matthes, 1956
Freshwater, marine and soil suctorians with the stylotheca. The stalk-like protuberance of stylotheca is shorter than the lorica itself and may absent. The cell body spherical or ellipsoid. Macronucleus spherical or elongated. Several clavate tentacles are arranged at the apical surface of the body. Reproduction by exogemmy with formation of a single apical protomit. Swarmer oval with longitudinal ciliary rows and tentacles. Type species: Thecacinetaparva Schulz, 1932 (Fig. 20, E).
3 All new combinations of the names and synonyms are indicated in Chapter 5.
Genera Pseudogemmides Kormos, 1935, Mistarcon Jankowski, 1986 and Manuelophrya Matthes, 1988
The species of loricate ectoparasite described by J. Kormos (1935b) from suctorian Periacineta sp. Exogemmy (semi-circumvaginative budding) is characteristic for the new species (distinguished from morphologically related representatives of the genus Pseudogemma with endogemmy) and on this basis a new genus Pseudogemmides was proposed by author. The type species of the genus is Pseudogemmides globosa Kormos, 1935 (Fig. 20, H). More recently (Kormos and Kormos, 1958) the name Pseudogemmides was synonymized with Urnula Claparede et Lachmann, 1861. However, the representatives of the latter are metacinetid suctorians with a single extremely long and agile tentacle unlike the short rod-like one in Pseudo-gemmides. Thus it is unlikely that this taxonomical action is justified. Nevertheless, some authors (Matthes et al., 1988; Jankowski, 1997) accepted it. A. Batisse (1994), in turn accepted both Pseudogemmides and Urnula.
One further ectoparasitic species was described by K. Nozawa (1939) under the name Pottsia parasitica Nozawa, 1939 (Fig. 20, G). The individuals of the species are parasites of peritrichous ciliates, attaching to the host’s bell by rod-like tentacles and to the host’s stalk by a short protuberance of the lorica. Consequently these ciliates are located only near the junction between stalk and zooid. J. Corliss (1960) proposed for the name Pottsia Chatton et Lwoff, 1927 the substituted name Pottsiocles in connection with homonymy. However, subsequently it was found that K. Nozawa’s species is unrelated to the genus Pottsiocles since it has rod-like tentacle and not capitate ones. Thus P. parasitica was transferred into Pseudogemmides Kormos (Dovgal, 1988, 1991, 1996).
A.V. Jankowski (1986) proposed to classify Pottsia parasitica into a new taxon but without refinement of its taxonomical rank. According to the author’s primary description (Jankowski, 1986, p. 85): “Mistarcon is the new genus or subgenus of Pseudogemmides Kormos, 1935”. A.V. Jankowski also proposed to use one or the other combination of names “as specialists deem necessary”. Finally, in a review article dealing with the problem of Mistarcon and related genera (Jankowski, 1997) the detailed diagnosis of the genus is given. The presence of protuberance of the lorica (“bearing plate”) by which the suctorian attaches to the host’s stalk is indicated as a characteristic of the genus.
A new species with rod-like tentacles was described by W. Guhl (1985) under the name Pottsiocles hannae (Fig. 20, I). The species was transferred into Pseudogemma on the basis of the tentacle type (Dovgal, 1991).
W. Guhl’s species was classified (Matthes et al., 1988) along with Pottsia parasitica with exogemmic budding in the new genus Manuelophrya. The type species of Manuelophrya was not indicated by the author. A.V. Jankowski (1992, 1997), in turn indicated Pottsiocles hannae Guhl, 1985 as the type species of Manuelophrya.
It should be noted that at first glance Manuelophrya is not morphologically different from Pseudogemmides. However, the presence of lorica was not mentioned either in the diagnosis of type species of the genus Pseudogemmides (P. hannae) or in the diagnosis of the genus Manuelophrya (see Matthes et al., 1988). Consequently, there is a sufficient distinction between Manuelophrya and Pseudogemmides and both the genus of J. Kormos’ and that of D. Matthes’ genera should be reclaimed.
We accept three related genera for parasitic exogemmins with rod-like tentacles as the result: Pseudogemmides Kormos, 1935 (type species is P. globosa Kormos, 1935, Fig. 20, H) possessing the lorica and attaching to host’s cell by the tentacle; Mistarcon Jankowski, 1986 (type species is Pottsia parasitica Nozawa, 1939, Fig. 20, G) possessing the lorica and attaching to host’s body by the tentacle and to host’s stalk by lorica protuberance, and Manuelophrya Matthes, 1988 (type species is Pottsiocles hannae Guhl, 1985, Fig. 20, I) without lorica, attaching to the host’s zooid by the tentacle.
Genus Miracineta Jankowski, 1981
The new genus Miracineta has been elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for paracinetid suctorians with thickened bottom of the stylotheca. The type species of the genus is Acineta saifulae Mereschkowsky, 1877. In our opinion the character “thickness of lorica bottom” is not generic. The name Miracineta Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with the Paracineta Collin, 1912.
Genus Flectacineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Flectacineta was proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for paracinetid suctorians “with stylotheca and apical tentacles”. The type species of the genus is Acineta livadiana Mereschkowsky, 1881 (Fig. 7, Bb). The genus was accepted by C. Curds
(1987), who amplified the diagnosis by the characteristic of lorica rim that is “inverted at apex, mounted upon a hollow stalk”. We investigated the type species of the genus. According to our observations the majority of individuals actually have the characteristic inversion of the stylotheca rim but there is a considerable variability of this character. There is good probability
that the same morphology of the stylotheca might have emerged in the several related species in parallel and is accordingly unsuitable for erection of the new genus. The name Flectacineta Jankowski, 1978 is synonymized with the Paracineta Collin, 1912.
Genus Faltacineta Jankowski, 1981
For A.V. Jankowski’s (1981) opinion those representatives of the genus Paracineta that have irregular folded stylotheca must be classified in the separate genus Faltacineta. Paracineta pleuromammae Steuer, 1928 has been designated as the type species. We believe that the outline of lorica is not sufficient for the erection of the genus. The name Faltacineta Jankowski, 1981 must be synonymized with Paracineta Collin, 1912.
Genus Sargassephelota Jankowski, 1981
The genus Sargassephelota has been erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for ephelotid species with prehensile tentacles arranged in a basal ring. The type species of the genus is Ephelota butschliana Ishikava, 1897. In our opinion the arrangement of tentacles is not a good reason for separation of the genus in ephelotid suctorians. The name Sargassephelota Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with Ephelota Wright, 1859.
Genus Discephelota Jankowski, 1981
The new genus Discephelota was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for ephelotid suctorians with massive apical widening of stalk. The type species of the genus is Ephelota gigantea Noble, 1929. Apical enlargement of the stalk is in fact widely distributed in ephelotids and could not be used for elevating the genus. The name Discephelota Jankowski, 1981 is the younger synonym of Ephelota Wright, 1859.
The systematic position of Podocyathus excavatus Dons, 1938
This species described by C. Dons (1938) has a deep cavity on the apical body surface. This feature makes Podocyathus excavatus similar to the type species of Metephelota Willis, 1945, the latter possessing a large apical cavity of the body in which the several sucking tentacles are placed. A.G. Willis (1945) noted the similarity between P. excavatus and M. coronata Willis, 1945 (Fig. 21, C). However, in the opinion ofthis author the transferring of P. excavatus in the genus Metephelota was premature. More recently, A.V. Jankowski (1981) erected P. excavatus in separate genus Discocyathus
based on the presence of the apical stalk widening that is equal to the cell width. In our view the degree of development of the character that is common in many ephelotid species cannot serve as a basis for elevation of a new genus. On the other hand, we believe that there is good reason to transfer P. excavatus in the genus Metephelota. The name Discocyathus Jankowski, 1981 is respectively the younger synonym of Metephelota Willis, 1945.
Genus Stylogemma Jankowski, 1981
The genus Stylogemma has been erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for rhabdophriid suctorians that are related to genus Trophogemma Jankowski, 1970 but have a cylindrical stalk instead of a pedicle. The type species of the genus is Rhabdophrya wailesi Kahl, 1934. The differentiation between stalk and pedicle amounts to the degree of character development and cannot be the reason for erection of the genus.
It should be recognized that there are two actino-phores in R. wailesi. A. Kahl (1934) has described these structures as «buds». The same actinophores are actually characteristic of Trophogemma but R. wailesi has capitate tentacles in contrast with rod-like ones in Trophogemma. At the same time, the representatives of the genus Dendrosomides Collin, 1906 have a combination of characters similar to R. wailesi (well-developed actinophores bearing capitate tentacles). In our opinion a supplementary investigation of R. wailesi morphology is necessary. As yet the species is transferred into the genus Dendrosomides. Consequently, the name Stylogemma Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with Dendrosomides Collin, 1906.
The systematic position of Ophryodendron mysidacii Fernandez-Leborans et al., 1996
A new species of vermigemmin suctorian Ophryo-dendron mysidacii (Fig. 22, D) has been described by
G. Fernandez-Leborans et al. (1996) as commensal of mysids from the estuary of river Bidasoa (Spain). The species differs significantly from the other representatives of the genus Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 by the presence of clavate tentacles and the lack of contractile actinophore (“trunk”) typical for ophryodendrid suctorians . There are good reasons for transferring O. mysidacii into the family Dendrosomididae Jankowski, 1981. However, the species differs from the representatives of the type genus of this family (Dendrosomides Collin, 1906) by the presence of elongated unramified macronucleus and the lack of the stalk (present in attached swarmer). By the latter character O. mysidacii differs from the all
dendrosomidid species. We believe that O. mysidacii should be relegated into a separate genus Leboransia gen. n. Generic name is given in honour of Dr. Gregorio Fernandez-Leborans.
Genus Leboransia Dovgal, gen. n.
Vermigemmin suctorians with a bag-shaped body elevated or sprawled over the substrate. The organism attaches to the substrate by the basal part of the body. Capitate tentacles are placed on 4-7 actinophores. The macronucleus is ribbon-like. The representatives of the genus reproduce by vermigemmy with formation of a single lateral protomit. The swarmer is devoid of ciliature and equipped with a larval adhesive organelle (sucker) located in the anterior pole. After attachment the swarmer forms a temporary stalk. The cyst is elliptic with a thin cover and attached to the substrate by a short basal protuberance. Type species: Ophryodendron mysidacii Fernandez-Leborans et al., 1996 (Fig. 22, D).
Genus Dentacinetides Batisse, 1992
The genus Dentacinetides with the type species Dentacinetides collini Batisse, 1992 has been described by A. Batisse (1992). The genus is very similar to Dentacineta Jankowski, 1978 and differs from the latter only by number of cortical ribs of the trophont body (6 in Dentacineta and 8 in Dentacinetides respectively). In our view this is not a good reason for elevation of a separate genus. We believe that the name Dentacinetides Batisse, 1992 is a younger synonym of Dentacineta Jankowski, 1978. Consequently the species Dentacinetides collini Batisse, 1992 must be transferred into the genus Dentacineta.
The systematic position of genus Pleurophryodendron Jankowski, 1978
The genus Pleurophryodendron has been erected by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for ophryodendrid suctorians with semi-internal budding. The type species of the genus is Ophryodendron reversum Collin, 1909 (Fig. 22, F) from the harpacticoid copepod Ameira sp. According to B. Collin’s (1909, 1912) diagnosis and figures the organism has an unflattened body with a long stalk. The tentacles and actinophores are absent but in one of B. Collin’s (1912) figures a thick fibrillar structure can be seen, considered by the author as a withdrawn “proboscis” (actinophore). The reproduction (consecutive poly-gemmic vermigemmy) begins with a rather shallow invagination of cortex at the lateral surface of the body.
In our opinion, as to the body shape and the manner of budding O. reversum is rather similar to
representatives of Dentacineta Jankowski, 1978 that also inhabit Ameira sp. and reproduc by vermigemmy. This species differs from dentacinetids by the formation of the protomit in a cell invagination and by successive budding. It is profitable to transfer the genus Pleuro-phryodendron Jankowski, 1978 into the family Denta-cinetidae Batisse, 1992. The diagnosis ofthe genus given by A.V. Jankowski is not very informative and might be refined as follows:
Genus Pleurophryodendron Jankowski, 1978
The vermigemmin marine suctorians with unflattened pyramidal body. The macronucleus is spherical or elongated. Lorica is absent. There is a long slightly curved stalk. Tentacle morphology is unknown. Reproduction is by semi-internal successive vermi-gemmy. The vermiform swarmer is devoid of ciliature. Type species: Ophryodendron reversum Collin, 1909 (Fig. 22, F).
Genus Lissacineta Jankowski, 1981
The genus Lissacineta has been proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for representatives of Thecacineta that have the lorica without folds. The Thecacineta cothurnioides Collin, 1912 has been indicated as the type species. In our view the character mentioned is no a good cause for elevation of a separate genus and the name Lissacineta Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with Thecacineta Collin, 1909.
Genus Litacineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Litacineta has been erected by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for thecacinetid suctorians that have the lorica with several apical ribs. The type species of the genus is Thecacineta gracilis Wailes 1928. This character cannot be used for elevating of the genus. The name Litacineta Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Thecacineta Collin, 1909.
Genus Paradentacineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Paradentacineta has been elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for representatives of Thecacineta “with the tentacles as in acinetiens”. The type species is Thecacineta cypridinae Collin, 1912. In our view capitate tentacles are common in many thecaci-netids and the character cannot serve as a basis for elevation of a new genus. The name Paradentacineta Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Thecacineta Collin, 1909.
Genus Stylarcon Jankowski, 1981
The new genus Stylarcon has been elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for rhabdophryid suctorians with the tentacles arranged in transverse and diagonal rows. The Rhabdophrya truncata Dons, 1918 has been indicated as a type species of the genus. In our opinion the arrangement of tentacles is not a generic character in Rhabdophryidae Jankowski, 1978. The name Stylarcon Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Rhabdophrya Chatton et Collin, 1910.
Genus Stylostoma Milne, 1886
The genus Stylostoma that includes ophryodendrid suctorians with several actinophores was not accepted by protozoologists but A.V. Jankowski (1967a) restored it and supplemented the diagnosis by indication that the actinophores are not folded (Jankowski, 1981). The Acineta trinacria Gruber, 1884 has been indicated as a type genus. The polymerization of the “trunk” is a common characteristic in many ophryidendrids and cannot serve as a basis for erection of a separate genus. The name Stylostoma Milne, 1886 must be synonymized with Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Thisarcon Jankowski, 1981
The genus Thisarcon have been erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for the ophryodendrid suctorians with a broadened body and a flattened apical cell surface possessing from 4 to 6 actinophores. The type species ofthe genus is Ophryodendron conicum Schroder, 1907. It is our belief that body outlines only are not sufficient for elevation of a new genus. The name Thisarcon Jankowski, 1981 must be synonymized with Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Elitarcon Jankowski, 1981
The new genus Elitarcon has been described by A.V. Jankowski (1981). The type species of the genus is Elitarcon harmothois Jankowksi, 1981. As a basic generic characteristic the presence of several folded actinophores was indicated. It has already been noted here that the polymerization of actinophores is not a generic character for ophryodendrid suctorians. The name Elitarcon Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859. The species E. harmothois must be transferred into the genus Ophryodendron.
Genus Nemertodendron Jankowski, 1978
In the primary diagnosis of the genus Nemertodendron only the presence of several apical actinophores has been indicated as a basic character (Jankowski, 1978). As the type species of the genus Ophryodendron prenanti Duboscq, 1925 has been marked. The diagnosis was subsequently supplemented (Jankowski, 1981) with evidence that in representatives of the genus the actinophores are not ribbon-like, thin, tubular and bear several hooked tentacles on the ends.
In our view the characters mentioned are not sufficient for elevation of a separate genus. The name Nemertodendron Jankowski, 1978 is synonymized with Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Stylophryodendron Jankowski, 1978
The genus Stylophryodendron has been elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for stalked ophryodendrid suctorians. The type species is Ophryodendron rosco-ffensis Batisse et Dragesco, 1967. Ophryodendrid suctorians that are devoid of stalk are classificated in the separate genus Corethria Wright, 1861 and as a result only stalked species remain in the genus Ophryodendron. Consequently, it is not necessary to erect a new genus with the same diagnosis. The name Stylophryodendron Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Setarcon Jankowski, 1981
A.V. Jankowski (1981) has proposed to relegate the ophryodendrid suctorians with stalk and sole actino-phore in a new genus Setarcon. The Ophryodendron pedicellatum Hincks, 1873 was indicated as the type species. As mentioned above, the number of actino-phores is not a generic character in ophryodendrids. The name Setarcon Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Isopodarcon Jankowski, 1981
A.V. Jankowski (1981) has classified the ophryodendrid species with “polymerization of actinophores” into a separate genus Isopodarcon. The type species is Ophryodendron multicapitatum Kent, 1881. We do not accept this character as generic in Ophryodendridae and synonymize the name Isopodarcon Jankowski, 1981 with Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Syllarcon Jankowski, 1981
A new genus Syllarcon with type species Syllarcon draconematis Jankowski, 1981 has been described by
A.V. Jankowski (1981). The location of several tentacles only on the top of the actinophore was indicated as a basic character of the genus. Several species from the genus Ophryodendron have been transferred into the new genus by A.V. Jankowski. The arrangement of tentacles on the actinophore is of no value for description of genera in ophryodendrid suctorians. Consequently, the name Syllarcon Jankowski, 1981 is the younger synonym of Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859. The species S. draconematis is transferred into the genus Ophryodendron respectively.
Genus Vinarcon Jankowski, 1981
The new ophryodendrid genus Vinarcon with the type species Vinarcon asteris Jankowski, 1981 (from echimoderms) has been described by A.V. Jankowski (1981). The presence of a specific structure (ampoule) at the basal part ofbody and the lack of polymerization of the actinophore are the characteristics of the genus. In our view the number of actinophores is not a genetic character in Ophryodendridae and a supplementary investigation of the attachment structure of the type species is necessary. The adhesion to the substrate is effected in V. asteris by the basal protuberance of the body. The lack of the stalk is characteristic for the genus Corethria Wright, 1861. The name Vinarcon Jankowski,
1981 is synonymized with Corethria and V. asteris transferred into the latter genus.
Genus Trinacineta Jankowski, 1981
A.V. Jankowski (1981) proposed to classify the species of tokophryid suctorians with three fascicles of the tentacles into a new genus Trinacineta. The type species of the genus is Podophrya diaptomi Kellicott, 1885. The above mentioned character is rather rare in suctorians of the genus Acineta as compared to Tokophrya. Consequently, the presence of this character points to the affinity between species and is truly generic for the acinetid suctorians. However, in unloricate tokophryid suctorians, which most commonly have an unflattened body, the species with more than two bundles of the tentacles are much more widespread. Therefore there is little point in erection of a new genus on the basis of polymerization of the tentacle fascicles in tokophryids. The name Trinacineta Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Tokophrya Butschli, 1889.
The systematic position of Testudinicola globovata Bovee, 1981
A new species Testudinicola globovata has been described by E. Bovee (1981) from American turtles.
T. globovata has a spherical body with two apical fascicles of clavate tentacles and a very short stalk. The species has been erroneously assigned by the author to the genus Testudinicola Jankowski, 1978, for which the lack of the stalk is characteristic. Recently (Matthes et al., 1988), the type species of the genus Testudinicola (Anarma brevis Goodrich et Jahn, 1943) has been transferred into the genus Trichophrya. However, the above-listed characters of Bovee’s species (especially, presence of the stalk) show that the species must be assigned to the genus Tokophrya Butschli, 1889 instead of Trichophrya.
Genus Armiacineta Jankowski, 1982
A new genus Armiacineta from gammarid amphi-pods of Lake Baikal has been described by A.V. Jankowski (1982). The Armiacineta seticola Jankowski,
1982 has been indicated as the type species of the genus. The preence of well-developed actinophores and thin, twisted capitate tentacles (named «flexotenes» by the author) were marked as basic characteristics of the genus. However, actinophores are common in toko-phryids and «flexotenes» are most probably not a special type of tentacles but only a variation of usual capitate tentacles. The species A. seticola must be transferred into the genus Tokophrya and the name Armiacineta Jankowski, 1982 synonymized with Tokophrya Butschli, 1889.
Genus Sibiracineta Jankowski, 1982
The presence of allometric stalk widening that comprises the bowl-like bearing structure is a characteristic feature of a new genus Sibiracineta. The type species ofthe genus is Sibiracineta endemica Jankowski,
1982 inhabiting Baikal gammarid crustaceans. We emphasize that various structures enhancing the junction between stalk and body are common in Tokophryidae Jankowski, 1978 and cannot serve as a basis for erection of the genus. The name Sibiracineta Jankowski, 1982 is the younger synonym of Tokophrya Butschli, 1889. Consequently, S. endemica must be transferred into Tokophrya.
Genus Tokophryona Jankowski, 1982
The new genus Tokophryona with the type species Tokophryona pelagica Jankowski, 1982 has been described by A.V. Jankowski (1982) from Baikal alga Anabaena sp. The presence of several thin tentacles (flexotenes) was indicated as a characteristic feature of the genus. The oligomerization of tentacles is common among tokophryids and as noted above the “flexotene”
is a variant of usual capitate tentacles. In our view, it is not necessary to elevate a separate genus for such forms. The name Tokophryona Jankowski, 1982 is synonymized with Tokophrya Butschli, 1889 and Tokophryona pelagica is transferred into Tokophrya.
Genus Basitokophrya Jankowski, 1982
A.V. Jankowski (1982) has proposed to elevate the species with an unusual structure at the junction of the stalk and the body in form of a frilled collar-like disc in separate genus Basitokophrya. The type species of the genus is Tokophrya ornata Gajewskaja, 1933 from gammarid crustaceans of Lake Baikal. As was mentioned above the structures enhancing the stalk-body connection are not generic characters in tokophryans. The name Basitokophrya Jankowski, 1982 is a younger synonym of Tokophrya Butschli, 1889.
Genus Noracineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Noracineta has been erected by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for acinetin suctorians “with hollow stalk and thecostyle”. Acineta infundibuliformis Wang et Nie, 1933 was indicated as a type species. Earlier in the same article the genus Anthacineta Jankowski, 1978 was described with a similar diagnosis but with a “semilorica”. We believe that the degree of the lorica development cannot be a basis for erection of the genus. The name Noracineta Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Anthacineta Jankowski, 1978.
Genus Semiacineta Jankowski, 1978
The new genus Semiacineta has been erected by
A.V. Jankowski (1978) for acinetid suctorians “with semilorica”. The type species of the genus is Acineta swarczewskyi Collin, 1911. The diagnosis given is the same as the one for Anthacineta. The name Semiacineta Jankowski, 1978 is synonymized with Anthacineta Jankowski, 1978.
Genus Conchacineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Conchacineta was elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for acinetid suctorians with tentacles that are arranged in rows. Acineta constricta Collin, 1909 has been indicated as the type species of the genus. The genus Conchacineta was accepted by C. Curds (1985a). However, in his article C. Curds does not cite the paper of A. Batisse (1972) in which a new genus Trematosoma Batisse, 1972 with a similar diagnosis was erected. In another article (Curds, 1985b) mention has already been made of the fact that
the diagnoses of A. Batisse (1972) and A.V. Jankowski (1978) are nearly identical.
Typical characters of the genus Trematosoma are arrangement of the tentacles in rows, position of the tentacle bases in a deep fold and presence of very large alveoles along apical body edge. In our opinion, the key generic character (rows of the tentacles) is the same in Trematosoma and in Conchacineta. This has led us to believe that Trematosoma Batisse, 1972 is a valid name but Conchacineta, 1978 is its younger synonym. Consequently, all species assigned by A.V. Jankowski and C. Curds to the genus Conchacineta must be transferred into Trematosoma.
Genus Sparsacineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Sparsacineta was elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for acinetid suctorians “with semilorica”. As the type species Acineta complatana Gruber, 1884 was indicated. In the recent revision of acinetians (Curds, 1985a) the latter species was erroneously mentioned as a representative of the genus Soracineta Jankowski, 1978. Respectively, the generic name Soracineta was erroneously synonymized with Conchacineta Jankowski, 1978 instead of Sparsacineta (Dovgal, 1999). We emphasize that the tentacles of A. complatana are arranged in rows as characteristic for representatives of the genus Trematosoma. Consequently, we believe that the name Sparsacineta Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Trematosoma Batisse, 1972.
Genus Rimacineta Jankowski, 1981
For the acinetids with tentacles arranged in rows and a finned lorica A.V. Jankowski (1981) has proposed the genus Rimacineta with the type species Rimacineta falcata Jankowski, 1981. The structuring of the lorica is not a generic character. We believe that the name Rimacineta Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Trematosoma Batisse, 1972. The species R. falcata is transferred into Trematosoma.
Genus Plicophrya Jankowski, 1975
The genus Plicophrya was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1975) for the acinetid suctorians with two fascicles of the tentacles and a folded lorica. The type species of the genus is Acineta sulcata Dons, 1927. As mentioned above, we do not accept the structuring of the lorica as generic character. The name Plicophrya Jankowski, 1975 is synonymized with Acineta Ehren-berg, 1834.
Genus Crossacineta Jankowski, 1978
The genus Crossacineta was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for the acinetid suctorians that have an annulate lorica. The type species is Acineta ornata Sand, 1899. The genus was accepted by C. Curds (1985a). However, the presence of any folds, rings, fins, etc. of the lorica is not a generic character in our opinion. The name Crossacineta Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Acineta Ehrenberg, 1834.
Genus Pseudocorynophrya Small et Lynn, 1985
The new genus Pseudocorynophrya was described by E. Small and D. Lynn (1985) without indication of the localities. The host of the suctorian is a crustacean Rhinocalanus sp. In the authors’ opinion, typical characteristics of the genus are the trumpet-shaped body and arrangement of the groups of tentacles on the distal cell surface. The type species was not indicated, but Pseudocorynophrya multitentaculata Small et Lynn, 1985 must be pointed as the type species on the basis of monotypy. In the species diagnosis a lorica on a stalk was also mentioned.
Judging from the figure of the species given by the authors (Small and Lynn, 1985, Fig. 26, p. 503) this suctorian lacks the lorica. The authors appear to have mistaken for the lorica the apical widening of the stalk. The macronucleus morphology and reproduction were not observed. In our opinion, on the strength of the such characters as laterally unflattened body, positioning of the tentacles on its apical surface and the presence of the apical stalk widening forming a lorica-like thecostyle the species P. multitentaculata must be transferred into the genus Pelagacineta Jankowski, 1978. Respectively, the name Pseudocorynophrya Small et Lynn, 1985 is a younger synonym of Pelagacineta Jankowski, 1978.
Genus Thalassacineta Jankowski, 1981
The genus Thalassacineta was elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1981) on the basis of arrangement of the tentacles in two lateral fascicles and a ribbon-like shape of macronucleus. Thereupon the type species of the genus (Acineta euchaetae Sewell, 1951) has been transferred by C. Curds (1987) into the genus Pelagacineta. Our investigations of the type species of A.V. Jankowski’s genus (I.V. Dovgal, unpubl. data) show that T. euchaetae possesses a usual lorica, two apical groups of tentacles and endogemmic reproduction with the formation of a single bud. This is characteristic for the genus Acineta. Consequently, the name Thalassacineta
Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Acineta Ehrenberg, 1834.
The systematic position of Podophrya marina Andrusova, 1886
Podophrya marina Andrusova, 1886 was indicated by A. Kahl (1934) as a type species of the genus Corynophrya Kahl, 1934 (with internal budding). In contrast, C. Curds (1987) believed that the “anterior notch in the body” of the species indicates invaginative budding. Consequently, P. marina must be transferred to an appropriate genus. In our opinion, the data available are insufficient for establishment of the mode of reproduction (the species diagnosis and figure Yu.I. Andrusova (1886) made from one individual). However, P. marina differs from other corynophryids by the presence of numerous and very agile tentacles (Fig. 25, H). On the strength of this we propose to establish for this species a new genus Andrusovia gen. n. Generic name is given in honour of Dr. Yu.I. Andrusova who is the author of the type species.
Genus Andrusovia Dovgal, gen. n.
Marine suctorians with stalked sack-like body. The macronucleus is elliptical. Numerous capitate agile tentacles are distributed all over the cell body. The mode of reproduction is unknown. Type species: Podophrya marina Andrusova, 1886 (Fig. 25, H).
Genus Capriniana Strand, 1928
Several species paraziting on the gills of freshwater fishes and having not a “star-shaped body” were classified by A.V. Jankowski (1967a) in a separate genus Phagobranchium Jankowski, 1967. Subsequently this author (Jankowski, 1981) recognized that the genus Caprina Mazzarelli, 1906 with a similar diagnosis had been described earlier but the generic name was substituted (Strand, 1928) for Capriniana in connection with homonymy. The type species of the genus is Trichophrya piscium Butschli, 1889 (Fig 26, D). The genus Capriniana was accepted by several investigators (Dovgal, 1988, 1991; Titar, 1989). However, typical characters by which the representatives of Capriniana differ from Trichophrya species cannot be seen with the help of the light microscopy. Based on this we (Dovgal, 1996) discussed the species from fishes as the representatives of the genus Trichophrya. Electron microscopy has disclosed that T. piscium attached to the host gill by characteristic adhesive tentacles (Batisse, 1994). In our opinion, this morphological adaptation could be sufficient for accepting of Strand’s genus.
The systematic position of Erastophrya wuchangensis Chen, 1964
Erastophrya wuchangensis (Fig. 27, E) is an inhabitant of peritrichous ciliates Apiosoma sp. from Chinese freshwater fishes (Chen, 1964, cited after Matthes et al., 1988). The presence of 2-5 fascicles of tentacles, a stretched macronucleus and the attachment to the apiosoma’s stalk-like body protuberance by an adhesive ring (cinctum) are characteristic for the species. However, the cinctum of the species is formed not by two cell protuberances as in the type species Erastophrya chattoni Faure-Fremiet (Fig. 27, D) but by a single protuberance only. For this adhesive structure the term “hemicinctum” was proposed in chapter 2. E. wuchangensis differs from the type species of the genus Erastophrya by several important characters such as adhesive organelle morphology, arrangement of the tentacles in fascicles and the shape of macronucleus. Therefore we propose to classify E. wuchangensis into a new genus Chenophrya gen. n. Generic name refers to Dr. Chen that is the author of the type species.
Genus Chenophrya Dovgal, gen. n.
Freshwater suctorians with an elongated body. The tentacles are arranged in several fascicles, actinophores are absent. The macronucleus is ribbon-like and extended along the body. The attachment to the host (apiosome peritrichs) body is effected by a special adhesive ring (hemicinctum). From the representatives of a related genus Erastophrya the new genus differs by arrangement of the tentacles in fascicles (and not all over the cell body), the morphology of macronucleus and adhesive organelle. Type species: Erastophrya wuchangensis Chen, 1964 (Fig. 27, E).
The systematic position of the genus Brachyosoma Batisse, 1975
The substituting name Brachiosoma was proposed by A. Batisse (1975) for Hallesia Sand, 1899 in connection with homonymy declared by J. Corliss (1960). In turn, the genus Hallesia was erected for endogemmic suctorians that lack both stalk and lorica and attach to the substrate by a basal cell protuberance. As the type species Podophrya brachypoda Stokes, 1885 (Fig. 26, C) was indicated. It is the opinion of A. Batisse (1975) that the genus must be assigned to the family Tokophryidae. C. Curds (1985c) also discussed the genus as relative to Tokophrya. However, lack ofthe stalk is characteristic for trichophryids and not tokophryids. Therefore we are transferring the genus Brachiosoma
Batisse, 1975 into the order Trichophryida Jankowski, 1978 and the family Trichophryidae Butschli, 1879.
Genus Gajewskajophrya Matthes, 1988
The new genus Gajewskajophrya was erected (Matthes et al., 1988) with the following diagnosis: The body in form of polyhedron. Reproduction by binary fission. Swarmers probably are absent. Tentacles are arranged in fascicles. The stalk is absent. Type species: Sphaerophrya melosirae Gajewskaja, 1933.
The genus was classified into the family Podo-phryidae Butschli, 1889.
S. melosirae leads the sessile mode of life on the water plants in lake Baikal. As C. Curds (1986) noted, reproduction by monotomy or by “pseudo-scissiparity” has not been adequately explored and calls for further investigation. According to its morphological features the species must be transferred into the genus Tricho-phrya. The name Gajewskajophrya Matthes, 1988 is synonymized with Trichophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Actinobranchium Jankowski, 1967
In the opinion of A.V. Jankowski (1981) the presence of characteristic tentacles lacking a knob is the main character of the genus Actinobranchium Jankowski, 1967. The type species of the genus is Trichophrya salparum Entz, 1884. However, there is a knob in the representatives of the genus, though flat, not spherical. As observed in the literature (see Foissner et al., 1995) and in our investigation a flat knob of the clavate tentacle is a common characteristic of various not related suctorian species. Consequently, the character is not generic. The name Actinobranchium Jankowski, 1967 is a younger synonym of Trichophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Baikalophrya Swarczewsky, 1928
The new genus Baikalophrya was described by B. Swarczewsky (1928a) for Baikalian dendrosomids with a flattened body sprawled along substrate with several actinophores around the periphery. Baikalophrya acanthogammari Swarczewsky, 1928, B. digitata Swarczewsky, 1928 and B. lobata Swarczewky, 1928 were listed as the representatives of the genus but the type species was not indicated.
It is pertinent to note that the species listed above closely resemble the type species of the genus Dendro-soma Ehrenberg, 1838 (D. radians). Our data (Dovgal, 1996) show that a high variability of the type of substrate is characteristic for the latter. D. radians can be raised
when attached to the legs of water insects or crustaceans or flattened (indistinguishable from representatives of Baikalophrya) on flat surfaces. We believe that the same cases of intraspecific variability are possible both in European and Baikalian habitats. The generic name Baikalophrya Swarczewky, 1928 is synonymized with Dendrosoma Ehrenberg, 1838, and the species names Baikalophrya acanthogammari Swarczewky, 1928, B. digitata Swarczewky, 1928 and B. lobata Swarczewky, 1928 are synonymized with Dendrosoma radians Ehrenberg, 1838.
Genus Baikalodendron Swarczewsky, 1928
B. Swarczewsky (1928a) considered the presence of several elevated ramified actinophores as the key character of the genus Baikalodendron. The type species of the genus (by monotypy) is Baikalodendron augus-tatum Swarczewsky, 1928 from lake Baikal. B. Swarczewsky has stated that Baikalodendron is related to the genus Dendrosoma, since the representatives ofthe latter also have elevated actinophores. In such a case, ramification of actinophores is the sole distinction between the genera.
However, B. Swarczewsky made no mention of the fact that there were both branched and non-ramified actinophores in D. radians (for example, see Foissner et al., 1995; Dovgal, 1996). Consequently, these differences are the cases of intraspecific variability and cannot be used as generic characters. The name Baikalodendron Swarczewsky, 1928 is a younger synonym of Dendrosoma Ehrenberg, 1838 and the specific name Baikalodendron augustatum Swarczewsky, 1928 is a younger synonym of Dendrosoma radians Ehrenberg, 1838.
Genus Lernaeophrya Perez, 1903
The genus Lernaeophrya was described from brackish-water hydroids (Perez, 1903). The type species is Lernaeophrya capitata Perez, 1903. The presence of numerous short actinophores (to distinguish from long in Dendrosoma) is the key character of the genus.
However, the representatives of Dendrosoma may have both long and short flattened actinophores. Thus such characteristic as actinophores length cannot be used as generic. But the presence of numerous (more than 12) actinophores is characteristic of L. capitata whereas 10 actiniphores are characteristic of D. radians. It seems plausible that Perez’s species is a separate brackish-water species of the genus Dendrosoma. Consequently, we synonymize the name Lernaeophrya Perez, 1903 with Dendrosoma Ehrenberg, 1838 and transfer L. capitata Perez, 1903 into the latter genus.
Genus Venodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
The new genus Venodiscophrya was proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for discophryins with the tentacles that are not arranged in fascicles and with unramified macronucleus. The type species of the genus is Podophrya lichtensteinii Claparede et Lachmann,
1859. The genus was accepted by A. Batisse (1994). However, in discophryin suctorians it is often difficult to estimate whether or not tentacles are arranged in fascicles. Both interspecific and intraspecific variability of this character exists. Thus, the arrangement of tentacles is not a generic character in discophryids. The shape of macronucleus in P. lichtensteinii is the same as in other representatives of the genus Discophrya Lachmann, 1859. Respectively, the name Venodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Discophrya Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Ferodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
The genus Ferodiscophrya was elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for discophryins with tentacles that are not arranged in fascicles and with a horseshoe-like macronucleus. The type species is Acineta cothurnata Weisse, 1847. As discussed above, the arrangement of tentacles is an inapplicable generic character in discophryids. It is also difficult to discriminate between a horseshoe-like macronucleus and an elongated one. The name Ferodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 must be synonymized with Discophrya Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Coronodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
A.V. Jankowski (1981) proposed the genus Corono-discophrya for the discophryin species with an unflattened body and tentacles that are placed both on the apical and basal body surfaces. The type species of the genus is Discophrya prismatica Holm, 1925. The arrangement of the tentacles is not a generic character, and the same is true for the body shape. The name Coronodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Discophrya Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Epidiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
The genus Epidiscophrya was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for discophryid suctorians with a shallow wine-glass-like lorica. The type species of the genus is Discophrya elongata var. scyphostyla Collin, 1911. This genus was accepted by A. Batisse (1994). In fact, the species that were assigned to this genus have an apical widening of the stalk rather than semilorica. This character is widespread in discophryids and is
inapplicable as a generic one. The name Epidiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Discophrya Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Paradiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
The genus Paradiscophrya was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for discophryins with an unflattened body and with tentacles located as in Coronodiscophrya but not arranged in circular groups. The type species is Podophrya astaci Claparede et Lachmann, 1858. The genus was also accepted by A. Batisse (1994). In our opinion, arrangement of tentacles and body shape are not generic characters. The name Paradiscoprya Jankowski, 1981 is synonymized with Discophrya Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Cyathodiscophrya Jankowski, 1978
The genus was erected by A.V. Jankowksi (1978) for discophryins with semilorica. The Discophrya cyathostyla Matthes, 1954 was indicated as the type species. As noted above we do not accept the presence of a cup-like stalk widening as a generic character. The name Cyathodiscophrya Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Discophrya Lachmann, 1859.
Genus Mesodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
Several discophryan species with a ramified macronucleus (as in Setodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981) but with tentacles that are not arranged in clearly defined fascicles were classified by A.V. Jankowski (1981) into a separate genus Mesodiscophrya. The type species of the genus is Podophrya steinii Claparede et Lachmann, 1858. The genus was accepted by A. Batisse (1994). However, tentacle arrangement is not a generic character in discophryins. We synonymize the name Mesodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 with Setodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981. The species Mesodiscophrya steinii (Claparede et Lachmann, 1858), M. operculariae (Stein, 1859) and M. setarcon Jankowski, 1981 are transferred into Setodiscophrya. The species M. erlangensis (Matthes, 1954) and M. deplanata (Matthes, 1954) have already been transferred into this genus (Dovgal, 1996).
The problem of the generic name Peridiscophrya
A new suctorian genus was independently described under the same name Peridiscophrya (but with a different species composition) by J. Kormos (1938b) and K. Nozawa (1938).
The suctorian with cylindrical or finger-like body totally covered by stylotheca belongs to K. Nozawa’s
genus. The length of a stalk-like protuberance of the lorica does not exceed one third of the total body length. Capitate tentacles are arranged in a single apical fascicle. The macronucleus is ramified. There are numerous (not less than 4) contractile vacuoles. The type species of the genus (Jankowski, 1981) is P. japonica Nozawa, 1938 (Fig. 28, H) from the shells of freshwater molluscs Viviparus sp. The species Podophrya cylindrica Perty, 1852 and Discophrya robusta Nozawa, 1938 were transferred by A.V. Jankowski (1981) into K. Nozawa’s genus.
A.V. Jankowski (1981) thought that suctorians with triangular, laterally flattened body covered with a stylotheca with a very short stalk-like protuberance belong to J. Kormos’ genus. Clavate tentacles are arranged in two apical fascicles. Acineta linguifera Claparede et Lachmann, 1858 (Fig. 28, F) was indicated as the type species of J. Kormos’ genus by A.V. Jankowski (1981) without any comments on the way of its fixation but possiblly as first mentioned on p. 13 of J. Kormos’ monograph.
Attempts to establish whose generic name (J. Kormos’ or K. Nozawa’s) was published earlier have so far been unsuccessful. A.V. Jankowski (1981) was the pioneer ciliatologist to call attention to this nomenclature problem. A.V. Jankowski (1981) suggested that J. Kormos had probably used the name Peridiscophrya independently from K. Nozawa but without indication “gen. n.”. We (Dovgal, 1988, 1991, 1996) previously used J. Kormos’ generic name.
K. Nozawa’s work (1938) was issued on November
18, but our attempts to establish the exact date of J. Kormos’ publication were unsuccessful. However, J.Kormos did not indicate the type species of the genus. He used (without indication of the authors) two specific names: “buckei” (Podophrya buckei Kent, 1882) and “linguifera” (Acineta linguifera Claparede et Lachmann) in combination with the generic name Peridiscophrya. This renders the fixation of the type species by monotypy impossible. It should be also noted that there is no stylotheca in the species Peridiscophrya buckei.
However, a generic name published after 1931 is unsuitable if not accompanied by fixation of a type species (International Code of Zoological Nomenclature, 2000). This is the case with the name Peridiscophrya Kormos, 1938. Consequently we believe that Peridiscophrya Nozawa, 1938 must be conserved as a valid name. The type species of the genus (by monotypy) is P. japonica Nozawa, 1938. We eliminated Podophrya cylindrica and Discophrya robusta from the genus because of the lack of the stylotheca in these species.
However, in our view the species of discophryid suctorians that are characterized by a laterally flattened body with two fascicles of tentacles and the stylotheca
must be separated from related forms with an ordinary lorica. Therefore we propose a new genus Kormosia gen. n. for these species. Generic name is given in honour of a famous Hungarian protozoologist Dr. J. Kormos.
Genus Kormosia Dovgal, gen. n.
Freshwater loricate discophryid suctorians with a laterally flattened body and capitate tentacles arranged in two apical fascicles. The lorica (stylotheca) is attached to the substrate by a short stalk-like protuberance. The macronucleus is spherical or elliptical. Type species: Acineta linguifera Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 (Fig. 28, F).
Genus Caracatharina Kormos, 1968
The substituting name Caracatharina was proposed instead of the generic name Catharina Kormos, 1957 in connection with assumed homonymy of the latter. The type species of the genus is Catharina florea Kormos, 1957. A.V. Jankowski (1981) has established that the name Catharina is not a homonym and Caracatharina was indicated as the younger synonym of Catharina. However, the coincidence of the diagnoses of the genera Peridiscophrya Nozawa, 1938 and Catharina Kormos, 1957 escaped the attention of this author. In fact, the presence of apical fascicle of tentacles, a ramified or ribbon-like macronucleus and the stylotheca is characteristic for both Nozawa’s and Kormos’ genera. Consequently, the names Catharina Kormos, 1957 and Caracatharina Kormos, 1968 are the younger synonyms of Peridiscophrya Nozawa, 1938. The species Catharina florea Kormos, 1957 must be transferred into the genus Peridiscophrya.
Genus Anisarcon Jankowski, 1981
The substituting name Anisarcon was proposed for Calix Fraipont, 1878 (in connection with homonymy) by A.V. Jankowski. The genus included periacinetid suctorians with an asymmetrical lorica. The Acineta notonectae Claparede et Lachmann, 1858 was indicated as the type species. However, we do not accept the shape of the lorica as a generic character. Therefore we synonymize the name Anisarcon Jankowski, 1981 with Periacineta Collin, 1909. The species Acineta notonectae was previously transferred into the genus Periacineta (Dovgal, 1988, 1991).
Genus Arcodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
The new genus Arcodiscophrya was described by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for periacinetid suctorians with
an allometric growth of the aperture of the lorica. The type species of the genus is Arcodiscophrya heraldica Jankowski, 1981 (the species name was in turn proposed for “Gelenkform von Discophrya hydrochi” in Matthes, 1954a, Fig. 19, p. 209). As discussed above, the outlook of the lorica is not a generic character. The name Arcodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 must be synonymized with Periacineta Collin, 1909. The species A. heraldica is transferred into the genus Periacineta.
Genus Tomodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981.
A.V. Jankowski (1981) proposed to classify disco-phryid suctorians with trophont morphology characteristic of Periacineta but with swarmers similar to representatives of Silenella Fenchel, 1965 in a separate genus Tomo-discophrya. Acineta paratuberosa Nie et Ho, 1943 was indicated as the type species. However, in the same article A.V. Jankowski suggested that representatives of Silenella closely resemble discophryid swarmers. In such an event, the swarmers of A. paratuberosa are morphologically similar to the swarmers ofother discophryid species. Thus, there are no reasons to classify A paratuberosa in a separate genus. The name Tomodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Periacineta Collin, 1909 and the species A paratuberosa must be transferred into the genus Periacineta.
The systematic position of Trichophrya rotunda Hentshel, 1916
Trichophrya rotunda (Fig. 28, J) is the type species of the genus Heliophrya De Saedeleer et Tellier, 1930 (Matthes, 1954d; Jankowski, 1981; Rieder, 1988; Dovgal, 1996). More recently Mogensen and Butler (1984) investigated the ultrastructure and reproduction of this species. In the opinion of these authors, T. rotunda is closer to suctorians with endogemmy than with inversogemmy according to its ultrastructural characters. In particular, the species differs in some ultrastructural details from another representative of the genus — H. erhardi(Rieder, 1936). On the basis ofthese data T. rotunda was retransferred from the genus Heliophrya to the genus Trichophrya. Other authors (Matthes et al., 1988; Rieder, 1988; Batisse, 1994; Foissner et al., 1995; Dovgal, 1996) classified the species as a representative of Heliophrya. However, A. Batisse (1994) assigned the latter genus to the family Trichophryidae (with internal budding) and not to Discophryidae Collin, 1912 where the related species from the genus Cyclophrya were indicated.
We emphasize that Mogensen and Butler (1984) ignored the fact that H. erhardi was a younger synonym of the type species of the genus Cyclophrya (Cyclophrya
magna Gonnert, 1935 (Fig. 28, K) has a ramified macronucleus, whereas representatives of Heliophrya possess a spheroid or ellipsoid macronucleus). Thus it is not surprising that the representatives of different genera demonstrate ultrastructural differences. In addition, it is clear from Fig. 1 of Mogensen’s and Butler’s article that these authors investigated at least two species, because Heliophrya minima (Rieder, 1936) is shown at the photograph mentioned. However, A. Batisse and some other authors did not take into account the principal point that in the article ofMogensen and Butler (1984) typical inversogemmy was described in representatives of Heliophrya. The same mode ofreproduction was observed both in H. rotunda and H. minima in the course ofour investigations. In our view, it is unreasonable to remove T. rotunda from Evaginogenia Jankowski, 1978. The combination Heliophrya rotunda (Hentshel, 1916) is conserved for the species.
Genus Paraheliophrya Jankowski, 1978
The new genus Paraheliophrya was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for heliophryin suctorians with tentacles that are not arranged in fascicles. The type species of the genus is Craspedophrya rotundaf. minima Rieder, 1936. However, we do not accept the arrangement of tentacles as a generic character in Helio-phryidae Corliss, 1979. Consequently, the name Para-heliophrya Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Heliophrya De Saedeleer et Tellier, 1930.
The systematic position of the genus Discosomatella Corliss, 1960
The substituting name Discosomatella was proposed by J. Corliss (1960) instead of a homonym name Discosoma Swarczewsky, 1928. The type species is D. tenella Swarczewsky, 1928 (Fig. 29, D) from Baikalian gammarid amphipods (Swarczewsky, 1928b). The body of the type species is flattened and disc-like with several rows of the rod-like tentacles at the apical surface. The macronucleus is ellipsoid. In the body shape this species is similar to representatives of the genus Heliophrya but differs from them by the shape of the tentacles that are not capitate. In our opinion, the type oftentacles and body outlooks attest to the affinity of this species with the genus Stylocometes. For this reason the genus is transferred into the family Stylocometidae Jankowski, 1981.
The systematic position of Choanophrya stenaselli Matjasic, 1963
The new suctorian species Choanophrya stenaselli was described by J. Matjasic (1963) from Jugoslavian
cave-dwelling isopodes. The mode of reproduction is unknown. The representatives of the species are stalked, with spherical body and ellipsoid macronucleus. From the figures of J. Matjasic’s article it is clear that the tentacles are not funnel-like (as in Choanophrya Hartog, 1901) (Fig. 25, L) but rod-like. D. Matthes and others
(1988) transferred the species into the genus Stylo-cometes on the basis of the latter character. However, the stalk is lacking in Stylocometes. In our opinion, the species of J. Matjasic is similar to Echinophrya horrida Swarczewsky, 1928 (Fig. 29, C) from Baikalian gammarids (Swarczewsky, 1928c). Therefore we transfer the species C. stenaselli Matjasic into the genus Echinophrya Swarczewsky, 1928.
Genus Dendrocometides Swarczewsky, 1928
The genus Dendrocometides was elevated by B. Swarczewsky (1928b). The type species of the genus is
D. priscus Swarczewsky, 1928 from Baikalian gammarid amphipodes. Hemispherical body, ellipsoid macronucleus and ramified tentacles are characteristic for the genus. As to these characters, D. priscus is similar to representatives of the genus Dendrocometes, differing only by pointed tentacle ends. The ultrastructure of the tentacles has not been investigated to date. It is our opinion that a larger diameter of the terminate parts of
tentacles in not sufficient for delimiting a new tentacle type. Thus, there is no reason to erect a separate genus. We synonymize the name Dendrocometides Swarczewsky, 1928 with Dendrocometes Stein, 1851 and transferre the type species into the latter genus.
Genus Silenella Fenchel, 1965
A new monotypical genus Silenella was described by T. Fenchel (1965) from gills and pereopodes of brackish-water gammarid amphipods. The type species is Silenella ovoidea Fenchel, 1965. The presence of a ribbon-like macronucleus, reduced somatic ciliature and lack of the cytostome are characteristic for the genus. The systematic position of Silenella in the phylum Ciliophora remains obscure. T. Fenchel (1965) presumed that S. ovoidea is similar in some details to suctorian swarmers. A.V. Jankowski (1981) included the genus in Suctorea as possibly related to periacinetid suctorians and indicated that the type species closely resembles discophryid swarmers. In our view, these organisms is similar not only to suctorian swarmers but also to apostomates, pilisuctorids, etc. The data currently available on the genus are probably insufficient to classify it into any ciliated taxon, including Suctorea.
CHAPTER 4. THE PHYLOGENY OF SUCTOREA
It has already been said that there are several versions of the suctorian system based on different estimations of the characters’ values.
For example, the mode of budding is accepted by many authors as a common character defining suctorian taxa of the highest rank. However, in the system of A.V. Jankowski (1980) this rank is subclass, in that of A. Batisse (1994), the order, and in that of D. Matthes and others (1988), suborder. Aside from taxonomical rank there is no agreement among the specialists regarding the number of budding modes. A.V. Jankowski (1981) recognized four modes, D. Matthes and others (1988) only three, and A. Batisse (1994) up to seven.
As for morphological characters, the disagreements are more sophisticated. In the opinion of D. Matthes’ (Matthes and Guhl, 1975), the system of ciliates must be based mostly on non-adaptive characters, such as morphology of the macronucleus. Following A.V. Jankowski’s (1981) concept, the genera of suctorians must include only morphologically similar species, but any species deflecting from the type species must be classified into a separate subgenus or genus. These
differences often concern a single character only. Hence numerous monotypical genera were erected by A.V. Jankowski (see above).
The considerations of both D. Matthes and A.V. Jankowski are not unreasonable. Yet it is impossible to solve the contradictions in Suctorea systematics without invoking new data, mostly on phylogenetic relations of suctorian taxa. However, no concepts concerning suctorian phylogeny have been discussed in systematic papers in the last two decades.
In our opinion, it is interesting to estimate phylogenetical relations in Suctorea with Hennigian approach.
The cladistic approach has the advantage that the totality of characters are analyzed regardless of the rank of taxa, whereas in classic methods the number of characters tends to decrease depending on the taxonomical rank (Jenner and Schram, 1999). This is particularly important in the absence of palaeontological data as in Suctorea.
In the course of preparing of the matrixes of suctorian characters we followed the recommendations
of R. Jenner and F.R. Schram (1999). The evaluation of characters and their states was conducted on the basis of our concept of suctorian evolution discussed above.
Mode of reproduction and traits of the life cycle
In our view the formation of different modes of budding provides the basis for the initial divergence in suctorians. Therefore the type of budding is a conservative character and reliably testifies to the affinity between taxa. However, in the context of the presence of binary fission in several suctorian groups it is more correct to speak about the mode of reproduction than about the manner ofbudding. Several suctorian species retain binary fission with exogemmy but some parasites and commensals of mammalian intestine probably lost budding secondarily. Thus, we use the monotomy as a character of a similar rank with budding mode.
The following modes of reproduction are used as the possible states of the character “mode of budding”: exogemmy, semi-circumvaginative budding, vermi-gemmy, endogemmy and inversogemmy.
We are the first to use protomit position as a reproduction character. This character has two states: apical and lateral locality.
Mode of conjugation with mobile microconjugants has been previously discussed before as a generic character in suctorians (Kormos, 1935a). However, in various suctorian taxa the transition from isogamy to anisogamy may occur and this character is quite suitable if a totality of characters is used.
Swarmer morphology
As may be inferred from the literature (Batisse, 1994), the similar swarmer morphotypes are independently formed in unrelated suctorian groups, for example in ephelotid and discophryid or in podophryid and enchelyomorphid suctorians. However, parallelism in tomit morphology is unknown within suctorian groups classified by mode of budding. The similarity in the swarmer morphology is a manifestation of the principle of tomit similarity (Dovgal, 2002) and may reliable testified the affinity at this level.
Morphology and function of the tentacle apparatus
The most important taxonomical characters are associated with morphology of tentacles. A.V. Jankowski (1981) considered no less than 15 types of tentacles. However, in our opinion characters based only on tentacle thickness and on knob development
or shape cannot be used to distinguish a tentacle type. For example, A.V. Jankowski (1981) discriminated nail-like and capitate tentacles but the differences might be indistinguishable with light microscopy. According to our observations, regular clavate tentacles of discophryid suctorians Periacineta buckei (Kent, 1882) and Discophrya elongata (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) in fact bear a spherical knob in the former and a flat one (nail-like) in the latter (Fig. 12). Therefore we considered only the following types of tentacles as applicable states of the character “type of tentacle”: capitate, rod-like, ramified, funnel-like and endosprits. Additional prehensile organelles of ephelotid suctorians were considered as a separate apomorphic character.
The characters based on morphology and function of tentacles of different modes (feeding, attachment) and their number (in case of partial oligomerization, when from 1 to 3 tentacles are present) were also used. The features of actinophore morphology were also applied.
The morphology of adhesive organelles
The mode of adhesive organelles is also discussed in taxonomical works (see Jankowski, 1981; Matthes et al., 1988; Dovgal, 1996). We considered the presence of the stalk and adhesive disk, attachment by body surface, body protuberance or cinctum as taxonomic characters. A.V. Jankowski (1973b) also distinguished the stalk and pedicle. In his opinion the stalk is different from the pedicle in proportion. The stalk diameter is less than its length, whereas the diameter of pedicle is equal or exceeds the length. Therefore the differentiation between stalk and pedicle amounts to the degree of character development. Thus, in contrast to A.V. Jankowski we do not accept the pedicle as a character.
The morphology of lorica
Taxonomical significance of this structure was a matter of contention between D. Matthes and A.V. Jankowski. Following A.V. Jankowski, we used the type of lorica (regular, stylotheca, mucous, but except semilorica) as a group of generic characters though various modes may develop in several genera of one family in parallel. Particularly it concerns mucous lorica forming at the expense of the glycocalyx amplification only.
Macronucleus morphology
Macronucleus morphology is also an important character already in use (Jankowski, 1981; Dovgal,
1996). However, D. Matthes and others (1988) do not apply this “inadaptive” character to distinction of genera in Suctorea, though they do so in Peritrichia Stein, 1859.
We believe that inadaptivity of the macronucleus shape deserves further comments. As discussed above, progressive evolution of sessile protists is associated with the increase of body size. However, the size of nucleus correlates with cell dimensions. Thus, the tendency may be followed in suctorians from lengthening of initial spherical macronucleus to its ramification. Consequently, the amplification of the function of vegetative nucleus is associated with adaptive changes in size and shape of the bodyAdaptivity of the ramified macronucleus is particularly striking in ephelotid suctorians. As mentioned above, the axonemae of their prehensile tentacles begin from special invaginations in macronucleus protrusions (Mikrjukov, 1997). The branches of macronucleus perform the mechanical function (Dovgal, 2000). Thus, in contrast to German authors (Guhl, 1979), the morphology of macronucleus is also an “adaptive” character. However, macronucleus morphology may be applied for phylogenetic interpretations.
The shape of body and arrangement of the tentacles
This large group of the characters is customarily used for distinguishing lower suctorian taxa. However, most cases of homoplasy were associated with these characters. Therefore this group was eliminated from the character matrixes.
Fig. 12. The knob morphology of (A) Discophrya elongata (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) (SEM, x8600) and (B) tentacles of Periacineta buckei (Kent, 1882) (SEM,x15000).
The groups of characters associated with reproduction and life cycle, feeding apparatus, adhesive organelles and derivative from these structures (tectinous loricas) may be used for analysis of suctorian phylogenetic relations.
Characters associated with reproduction and morphology that are used in suctorian taxonomy and their states are summarised in the following list:
1. Reproduction by binary fission (monotomy): 0
- yes; 1 - no; ? - unknown state.
2. Mode of budding: 0 - exogemmic; 1 - semi-circumvaginative exogemmic budding; 2 -vermigemmic budding; 3 - endogemmic budding; 4 - inversogemmic budding; 5 - the state absent; ? - unknown state.
3. Protomit position: 0 - apical; 2 - lateral; 3 - the state absent; ? - unknown state.
4. Life cycle with alternation of generations; 0 -yes; 1 - no; ? - unknown state.
5. The mode of conjugation: 0 - isogamic; 1 -anisogamic involving trophonts; 2 - anisogamic involving trophont and mobile microconjugant; ? - unknown state.
6. The tentacles in protomit: 0 - yes ; 1 - no; ? -unknown state.
7. The anlages of the tentacles in protomit: 0 - yes; 1 - no; ? - unknown state.
8. Swarmer ciliature: 0 - yes; 1 - no; ? - unknown state.
9. Perforatorium: 0 - yes; 1 - no; ? - unknown state.
10. The presence of the tentacles: 0 - yes; 1 - no; ? -unknown state.
11. The tentacle type: 0 - capitate; 1 - rod-like; 3 -endosprits; 4 - funnel-like; 5 - ramified; 6 -absent; ? - unknown state.
12. The morphology and function of capitate tentacles: 0 - regular; 1 - with basal widening; 2
- flexible; 3 - prehensile with reduced axonema; 4 - finger-like; 5 - no; ? - unknown state.
13. The morphology and function of rod-like tentacles: 0 - feeding; 1 - attachment; 2 - feeding and attachment; 3 - no; ? - unknown state.
14. The function of ramified tentacles: 0 - feeding; 1 - attachment; 2 - no; ? - unknown state.
15. Additional prehensile organelle: 0 - absent; 1 -present; ? - unknown state.
16. Numbers of tentacles: 0 - more than two; 1 -two tentacles; 2 - single tentacle; 3 - no; ? -unknown state.
17. Actinophore: 0 - yes; 1 - no.
18. The degree of actinophore development: 0 -
slightly developed; 1 - well-developed body protuberances; 2 - absent; ? - unknown state.
19. Actinophore morphology: 0 - unramified; 1 -ramified; 2 - «proboscis-like»; 3 - no; ? -unknown state.
20. Attachment: 0 - yes; 1 - no.
21. The mode of attachment: 0 - by body surface; 1
- by stalk; 2 - by stalk-like protuberance of the stylotheca; 3 - by tentacle; 4 - by cinctum; 5 -absent.
22. The attachment by body surface: 0 - by basal
surface; 1 - by body protuberance; 2 - no.
23. Stalk morphology: 0 - tectinous adhesive disk; 1 - regular stalk; 2 - polymerization of the stalk; 3 - no.
24. The morphology of stalk protuberance: 0 -slightly expanded; 1 - cup-like expanded; 2 -endostyle; 3 - no.
25. Cinctum morphology: 0 - from two body protuberances; 1 - from single protuberance; 2
- no.
26. The presence of lorica: 0 - no; 1 - yes.
27. Regular lorica: 0 - yes; 1 - no.
28. The degree of regular lorica development: 0
developed; 1 - semilorica; 2 - no.
29. The morphology of regular lorica: 0 - symmetrical; 1 - asymmetrical; 2 - with thorns; 3 -ribbed; 4 - no.
30. The shape of regular lorica aperture: 0 - with even edge; 1 - slit-like; 3 - no.
31. Stylotheca: 0 - present; 1 - no.
32. The degree of stylotheca development: 0 -complete developed; 1 - semilorica; 2 - no.
33. The morphology of stylotheca: 0 - symmetrical; 1 - asymmetrical; 2 - with thorns; 3 - ribbed; 4 -no.
34. The shape of stylotheca aperture: 0 - with even edge; 1 - with cuts; 2 - slit-like; 3 - aperture absent; 4 - no.
35. Mucous lorica: 0 - yes; 1 - no.
36. The shape of macronucleus: 0 - spherical or ellipsoid; 1 - ribbon-like; 2 - ramified; ? -unknown state.
As illustrated in the cladogram given by J.L. Riley’s and L.A. Katz’s (2001) (based on rDNA data) that included suctorian species with various modes of budding (Prodiscophrya solaris (Stein, 1859) named Prodiscophrya collini (Root, 1915) by the authors, Ephelota sp. and Cyclophrya magna named Heliophrya erhardi) the Suctorea can be provisionally considered as monophyletic group. Based on the evolutionary tendencies discussed in Chapter 2 the following characters may be recognized as plesiomorphic: monotomy (character 1 with state 0, subsequently symbolised as “1.0”), lack of budding (2.5), lack of obligate attachment and attachment organelles (20.1), lack of the lorica (26.0), isogamy (5.0). In our view the hypothetical ancestor of the suctorians may have possessed of listed properties. Although, as noted above, we do not have enough reason to consider didiniid ciliates as ancestors of suctorians, didiniids possess nearly all features mentioned. Thus we used the genus Didinium as the outgroup in all analyses discussed below. The computations were performed using the schedule HENNIG 86.
It has already been mentioned that the formation of several modes of budding was the basic tendency in suctorian evolution. Morphological features including feeding apparatus most likely developed in parallel. Considering this, the phylogenetical relations in Suctorea were analyzed singly within the four groups with different reproduction modes. However, the relations between the mentioned groups were our initial concern. Only the first group of characters from the list were used in the process (Table 1).
As a result we obtained the parsimonious tree with length 8, consistency index (ci) that comprises 100 and retention index (ri) 100 (Fig. 13). Exogemmin suctorians were indicated as initial group that is brought with outgroup by ability to binary fission (character 1.0). Another three clusters are represented by suctorians that lost this feature (character 1.1). The outlines obtained accord well with the present views on both budding evolution and phylogeny of Suctorea (Kormos and Kormos, 1957; Jankowski, 1980; Dovgal, 1996). Within clusters obtained the character matrixes were made up
Table 1. States of characters in subordinate groups within Suctoria (explanation are in the list of characters).
Characters
Taxa 1 2 3 4 5
Didinium (outgroup) 0 ? 2 1 0
Exogenia 0 0 ? 0 0
Vermigenia 1 2 ? 1 0
Endogenia 1 3 2 1 0
Evaginogenia 1 4 2 1 2
using characters of the type species of suctorian genera and the totality of features involved.
Phylogenetic relations within exogemmins
The characters of type species from 31 genera were processed (Table 2). As a result we obtained about 100 trees with length 156, ci=48 and ri=78. The consensus cladogram (Fig. 14) contains two major groups of genera characterized by presence (31.0) or absence
(31.1) of the stylotheca.
The genera Phalacrocleptes, Manuelophrya and Ophryocephalus positioned in the first cluster lack the lorica.
Reproduction by monotomy only (characters 1.0 and 2.5) bring together the genus Phalacrocleptes and the outgroup. In our opinion this is due to the specialization of the genus to ectoparasitism only. The position of the genus can be also attributed to adaptations associated with the change of tentacle function from feeding to adhesive. The position of the genus Manuelophrya can be explained in an analagous way. In other characteristics [semi-circumvaginative budding (2.1), lateral protomit position (3.1), rod-like tentacle (11.2)] the representatives of the genus are related to the loricate parasitic genera Mistarcon and Pseudogemmides.
As for the genus Ophryocephalus, its position at the diagram is attributable to a single flexible tentacle
Exogenia Vermigenia Endogenia
2.0 \2.2 2.3
1.0\ 7*1-1
similar to that in representatives of the genus Urnula. However, some other characters such as simultaneous multiple budding show that the genus probably has affinity to Ephelota and related genera.
Unique life cycle with alternation of generations and formation of both ciliated and non-ciliated swarmers is characteristic of the genus Tachyblaston Martin, 1909. It is customary to position this genus near Ephelota it parasitizes on (Kahl, 1934). Yet according to such characters as stylotheca presence (at “dactylophrya stage”) and lateral protomit position Tachyblaston should be placed near metacinetid suctorians.
The loricate suctorians with stylotheca (31.0) make up a compact group within the first cluster.
In another cluster a set of genera differing in presence of additional prehensile organelles (Ephelota and relative genera) stand out. In our view the position of the genus Praethecacineta Matthes, 1956 in the cluster is associated with homoplasic character, the presence of lorica. (Lorica is also characteristic of Shellephelota Jankowski, 1981 and (mucous lorica) of Luxophrya Jankowski, 1978).
On the whole, there are rather many cases of homoplasy within exogemmin suctorians as demonstrated by consistency index (48). However, if we eliminate the cases when the outlines are affected by parallelisms (position of Praethecacineta and Ophryocephalus), the tree adequately reflects the phylogeny of suctorians with exogemmic budding.
Both evolutionary lineages that stand out begin from several primitive forms similar to podophryans.
Thus, we derive the ephelotin suctorians with additional prehensile structures and corona-like ramified macronucleus from podophryins. As discussed in Chapter 2, the prehensile tentacles of ephelotids formed independently of sucking ones. This suggestion is favoured by the fact that the microtubular pattern of axonema in the former differs markedly from that in the latter and also by the fact that regular haptocysts are present in prehensile tentacles (Mikrjukov, 1997).
Evaginogenia
2.4
Fig. 13. Phylogenetical relationships of the major groups within Suctorea distinguished by the mode of reproduction. The numbers of principal apomorphies correspond to those in the list of characters.
Table 2. States of the generic characters within Exogenia (explanation are in the list of characters).
Taxa Characters
1 2 3 4 5 6 C\ 00 r- 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 00 19 20
Didinium (outgroup) 0 5 2 1 0 1 1 1 1 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Parapodophrya 0 1 0 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Podophrya 1 1 0 1 0 0 1 1 1 1 1 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Sphaerophrya 0 1 0 1 0 0 1 1 1 1 1 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Vanchovenia 0 5 2 1 ? 1 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Allantosoma 0 5 2 1 ? 1 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Arcosoma 0 5 2 1 ? 1 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Allantoxena 0 5 2 1 ? 1 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Severonis 1 0 0 1 ? 1 1 1 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Phalacrocleptes 0 5 2 1 ? 1 1 1 1 0 2 5 1 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Metacineta 1 1 1 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Urnula 1 1 1 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Paracineta 1 0 0 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Actynocyathula 1 1 0 1 ? 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Limnoricus 1 0 0 1 ? 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Distarcon 1 0 0 1 ? 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Nipponarcon 1 0 0 1 ? 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Luxophrya 1 0 1 1 ? 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Loricophrya 1 0 0 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Praethecacineta 1 0 1 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 0 2 3 0 1 2 3 0
Mistarcon 1 1 1 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 2 5 2 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Pseudogemmides 1 1 1 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 2 5 2 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Manuelophrya 1 1 1 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 2 5 2 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Tachyblaston 1 0 1 0 ? 1 0 1 0 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 0
Ephelota 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 1 0 1 2 3 0
Tunicophrya 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 1 0 1 2 3 0
Metephelota 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 1 0 1 2 3 0
Podocyathus 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 1 0 1 2 3 0
Shellephelota 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 1 0 1 2 3 0
Thaumatophrya 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 1 2 1 2 3 0
Ophryocephalus 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Ophiurephelota 1 0 0 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
As for macronucleus branches, their original function was probably mechanical (supporting prehensile tentacles) but this was the basis for a transition to polygemmic budding. As a result, the reproductive potential of the group considerably increased.
During adaptation to inhabiting various substrates in several ephelotins the stalk (in Tunicophrya Jankowski, 1973) and prehensile tentacles (in Ophryoce-phalus and Ophiurephelota) were lost. The oligomerization of the sucking tentacles is characteristic of parasitic forms (Thaumatophrya, Ophryocephalus). In some genera special supporting structures such as apical stalk widening (in Podocyathus Kent, 1881) or lorica (in Shellephelota) were formed.
The tendency in suctorian evolution represented by cladogram is the secondary transition to the planktonic mode of life. The reduction of the adhesive organelles in Sphaerophrya is associated with this tendency.
The allantosomid suctorians might be derived from planktonic podophryids. In our view, morphological relations of the genus Vanhovenia to sphaerophryans attest this. This genus may be considered as intermediate between two groups.
Within the second cluster the tendency to protection of stalk-zooid junction by means of formation of a regular lorica or stylotheca is clearly expressed.
The tendency to submergence of the protomit into parental cell (semi-circumvaginative budding) is associated with the limitation of space within lorica and manifests itself in Paracineta and Metacineta.
There are few substrate-specific forms among exogemmins with stylotheca. Metacineta rossica (Jankowski, 1981) is specific to isopode crustaceans (Asellus Geoffroy, 1762). The tendency to host specificity is manifest in parasitic forms only.
Consequently, morphological adaptations in form of oligomerization of the tentacles (Urnula) and of amplification of their epiplasm (Pseudogemmides, Mistarcon, Manuelophrya) in genera which transited from commensalism to parasitism may occur.
The systematic position of the genus Tachy-blaston was little discussed. In the scheme of phy-logenetical relations obtained (Fig. 14) Tachyblaston falls into a common group with loricate genera. Aside from the presence of stylotheca in a state of dacty-lozoit, the semi-circumvaginative budding with
Table 2. (Continuation)
Taxa Characters
21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36
Didinium (outgroup) 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Parapodophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Podophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Sphaerophrya 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Vanchovenia 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Allantosoma 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Arcosoma 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Allantoxena 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Severonis 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Phalacrocleptes 3 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 4 1 0
Metacineta 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 1 1 0
Urnula 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 1 1 0
Paracineta 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Actynocyathula 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Limnoricus 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 2 1 0
Distarcon 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 1 2 0 1 0
Nipponarcon 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Luxophrya 1 2 1 0 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0 0
Loricophrya 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Praethecacineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 0 1 3 4 3 1 0
Mistarcon 3 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Pseudogemmides 3 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Manuelophrya 3 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Tachyblaston 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 1 0
Ephelota 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Tunicophrya 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Metephelota 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Podocyathus 1 2 1 1 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Shellephelota 1 2 1 1 2 1 0 0 0 0 1 3 4 3 1 2
Thaumatophrya 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Ophryocephalus 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 6 2 2 0 1 1 1 2
Ophiurephelota 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 1
lateral position of the protomit brings these genera closer together.
In our opinion, the position of Tachyblaston in the cladogram reflects its actual affinity with metacinetins and paracinetins.
Phylogenetic relations within vermigemmins
The morphological characters and features of reproduction of 22 genera were analyzed (Table 3). As a result we obtained about 100 equal trees with length 91, ci=75 and ri=85.
The consensus cladogram (Fig. 15) contains two major groups which include genera with capitate tentacles (11.0) and both rod-like (11.2) and ramified (11.5 — genus Shyzactinia) tentacles.
Two groups of genera the representatives of which possess actinophores (17.0) (Dendrosomides, Asterifer,
^ Fig. 14. Phylogenetical relationships of the genera within exogemmin suctorians. The numbers of principal apomorphies correspond to those in the list of characters.
etc.) or, alternatively, lack special carrying tentacle structures (17.1) can be outlined within vermigemmin cluster characterized by capitate tentacles.
Unloricate dentacinet suctorians with flexible tentacles fall into the same group as loricate thecaci-netids due to the absence of actinophores. The position of the genera Cucumophrya Kunz, 1938 and Spelaeo-phrya Stammer, 1935 is due to the same reasons. It is unlikely that similarity as to this character is a consequence of affinity between the genera. This combination is probably a result of parallelism.
The genera Hastarcon, Trophogemma, Spinarcon and Vostonica with actinophores of different shape
(18.1) give rise to a distinct group within the cluster characterized by presence of rod-like (11.2) or ramified (11.5) tentacles. The second group combines the genera with «proboscis-like» (trunk) actinophores (19.2). The genus Shyzactinia with ramified tentacles (11.5) is an exception. However, the genus indubitably has affinity with other “trunk-bearing” genera.
Nevertheless, the cladogram gives a reasonable fit to phylogenetical relations of vermigemmin suctorians.
Contrary to exogemmins, in which specificity to host or substrate is not very common, the vermi-gemmins (excluding genera Spongiarcon, Spelaeophrya, Leboransia, Trophogemma and a few representatives of Ophryodendron and Thecacineta) inhabit exclusively harpacticoid crustaceans. It seems plausible that the group owes its origin to the transition to commensalism on harpacticoids. As it was discussed above, the
vermigemmic budding is an adaptation to hydrodynamic conditions near the body surface of the crustacean hosts (mainly harpacticoids).
Vermigemmins are one of the few suctorian groups whose phylogeny has been discussed. A.V. Jankowski’s (1994) hypothesis is that Rhabdophrya is the most primitive genus of vermigemmin suctorians. From this morphotype the genera Dendro-somides, Rondosomides, Trophogemma, Crevicometes, Hastarcon, etc. are derived. However, this phylogenetic lineage was discussed without considering the type of the tentacle.
In our view, vermigemmin suctorians might be derived from exogemmins. Two evolutionary lineages (with conservation of capitate tentacles and with formation of rod-like tentacles) were generated shortly after transition of the ancestral group to inhabiting harpacticoids.
The forms with clavate tentacles related to the genera Lecanophrya or Spelaeophrya are probably the most primitive vermigemmins. The subsequent divergence of the group was associated mostly with amplification of function of the prey capture that results in ramification of body, the shape of actinophores and the formation of flexible agile tentacles.
The genus Rhabdophrya is probably closest to the initial group of the second lineage from which the genera Spinarcon, Trophogemma, Hastarcon, Vostonica and Ophryodendron can be derived. This idea is to some extent consistent with A.V. Jankowski’s (1994) view.
Table 3. States of the generic characters within Vermigenia (explanation are in the list of characters).
Taxa Characters
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20
Didinium (outgroup) 0 5 2 1 0 1111 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Spelaeophrya 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Lecanophrya 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 0
Lecanophryella 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Dendrosomides 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Rondosomides 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Cucumophrya 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Asterifer 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Leboransia 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 0
Dentacineta 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Pleurophryodendron 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0
Thecacineta 1 2 1 1 0 110 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Ophryodendron 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 2 0
Corethrya 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 2 0
Shyzactinia 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 5 5 3 0 0 0 0 1 2 0
Spongiarcon 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 2 0
Loricodendron 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 2 0
Rhabdophrya 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 3 0
Crevicometes 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 2 0
Hastarcon 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Spinarcon 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 3 0
Trophogemma 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Vostonica 1 2 1 1 ? 110 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Taxa Characters
21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 3 o 3 3 NJ 33 5 3 4 3 36
Didinium (outgroup) 5 2 3 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Spelaeophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Lecanophrya 1 2 1 0 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Lecanophryella 1 2 1 0 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Dendrosomides 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 2
Rondosomides 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Cucumophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Asterifer 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Leboransia 0 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Dentacineta 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Pleurophryodendron 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Thecacineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 3 4 3 1 0
Ophryodendron 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Corethrya 0 1 3 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Shyzactinia 0 1 3 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Spongiarcon 1 2 2 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Loricodendron 0 0 3 3 2 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 1 1
Rhabdophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Crevicometes 0 0 3 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Hastarcon 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
Spinarcon 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Trophogemma 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 1
Vostonica 1 2 1 3 2 0 3 4 2 3 4 3 1 0
divergence is relatively less than in exogemmins or especially in endogemmins that will be discussed below. This divergence level also accounts for high values of consistency index (75) and retention index (85).
Phylogenetic relations within endogemmins
A discussible cladogram for endogemmin genera was difficult to obtain due to abundance of genera (51) and the high incidence of homoplasy. Therefore, the stalked (25 genera) and unstalked (26 genera) endogemmins, usually separated by investigators (Jankowski, 1981; Batisse, 1994), were analysed separately (Tables 4 and 5).
The consensus cladogram (Fig. 16), based on 100 parsimonic trees (length 89, ci=65, ri=83), represents the phylogenetic relations between genera of stalked endogemmin suctorians.
The first group includes several genera distinguished by only one or two characters, mostly associated with tentacle morphology (Choanophrya by funnel-like tentacles (11.4), Dactylostoma by finger-like ones (12.4), Andrusovia and Talizona by flexible ones (12.2), etc.). It is our opinion that similar specializations ofcapitate tentacle to different food in the genera listed above were derived
^ Fig. 15. Phylogenetical relationships of the genera within vermigemmin suctorians. The numbers of principal apomorphies correspond to those in the list of characters.
The origin of ramified tentacles in Shyzactinia was associated with ophryodendrids development.
One further comment should be made. Vermigemmin suctorians are specialized mainly to one taxa of the host (harpacticoid copepods). Thus, their
11.0
-h
1
1 17.0
11.2
+
11.5
19.2
19.0
19.2
-C
Dentacineta
Spelaeophrya
Cucumophrya
Pleurophryodendron
Thecacineta
Dendrosomides
Rondosomides
Asterifer
Leboransia
Lecanophrya
Lecanophryella
Rhabdophrya
Spinarcon
Ophryodendron
Trophogemma
Hastarcon
Vostonica
Spongiarcon
Corethrya
Shyzactinia
Loricodendron
Crevicometes
independently. Thus, the similarity between the genera in this case does not point to affinity between them.
The genera with mucous lorica (35.0) are included into the second group (Rondacineta Jankowski, 1978, Cryptacineta Jankowski, 1978 and Cryptophrya Jankowski, 1973). However, it is unlikely that the presence of the mucous lorica may be thought of as a synapomorphic character.
Another group of related genera (by such synapo-morphic character as lack of the lorica — 26.0) is characterized by different stalk morphology and the presence of various actinophores.
The position of Parastylophrya Jankowski, 1978 has attracted our attention because the genus was previously considered as related to unstalked trichophryins (under the name Digitophrya Matthes, 19884 ). It turned out that Parastylophrya is actually closer to a tokophryin genus Listarcon Jankowski, 1982 but differs from it by the presence of ramified macronucleus (36.2) and actinophores (17.0).
The genera with regular tectinous lorica (27.0) or stylotheca (31.0) form the third large group.
The group includes 26 genera of unstalked endo-gemmins (Fig. 17) partitioned into two clusters and seven
4 Digitophrya is both synonymous and homonymic name (see Corliss, 1979, p. 208 and Aescht, 2001, p. 59).
lower-order groups with different combinations of synapomorphies at the consensus tree (length 99, ci=55, ri=80) that is in turn based upon 100 equal trees.
The genera of intracellular parasites of ciliates and molluscs (Parendosphaera and Endosphaera) and parasites of turbellarian parenchyma (Acoelophthirius Jankowski, 1981) are in the first cluster. Complete reduction of tentacles (10.1), and the presence of a characteristic swarmer with perforatorium (9.0) unite these genera.
These genera fall near the outgroup due to lack of tentacles and adhesive organelles.
The genera with tentacles (10.0) are united into the second cluster.
Within this cluster there falls the group of genera whose representatives lead planktonic mode of life — Mucophrya, Tetraedrophrya, Marinecta, Astrophrya, Staurophrya). The latter two genera are united by the presence of actinophores (17.0).
The genera characterized by the stylotheca (31.0) are included into another group. Ectoparasitic suctorians with rod-like tentacle (11.2) also performing the function of adhesion (Pottsiocles, Pseudogemma) belong to this group. The planktonic genus Sphaera-cineta Jankowski, 1987 and the sessile genus with capitate tentacles Solenophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 are also in this group, yet parallelisms can not be ruled out.
Table 4. States of the generic characters within stalked Endogenia (explanation are in the list of characters).
Taxa Characters
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20
Didinium (outgroup) 0 5 2 1 0 1 1 1 1 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Acinetides 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 0
Acineta 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 0
Trematosoma 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 0
Soracineta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 1 0 0 0 0
Anthacineta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 0
Cryptacineta ? ? ? ? ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Phyllacineta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Cryptophrya ? ? ? ? ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Rondacineta ? ? ? ? ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Slitarcon 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 ? ? ? ? ? 0 ? 1 2 3 0
Vasacineta 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Acinetopsis 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 3 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Veracineta 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Tokophrya 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0
Tokophryopsis 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0
Lecanodiscus 1 ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Listarcon 1 ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Pelagacineta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Corynophrya 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Andrusovia ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 2 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Dactylostoma ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 4 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Talizona 1 ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 2 3 2 0 1 1 2 3 0
Parastylophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 0 0
Squalorophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Choanophrya 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 4 5 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Taxa Characters
21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36
Didinium (outgroup) 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Acinetides 1 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 2 1 0
Acineta 1 2 1 0 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Trematosoma 1 2 1 0 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Soracineta 1 2 1 0 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Anthacineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 1 0 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Cryptacineta 1 2 1 0 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Phyllacineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Cryptophrya 1 2 1 0 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Rondacineta 1 2 1 0 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Slitarcon 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Vasacineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 0 1 3 4 3 1 0
Acinetopsis 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Veracineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 1 1 3 4 3 1 0
Tokophrya 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Tokophryopsis 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Lecanodiscus 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Listarcon 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Pelagacineta 1 2 1 1 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Corynophrya 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 1
Andrusovia 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Dactylostoma 1 2 1 1 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Talizona 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
Parastylophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 2
Squalorophrya 1 2 1 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0 1
Choanophrya 1 2 1 2 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1 0
The genera attaching to the substrate by the body or by specialized tentacles (as Capriniana — 21.3) are
surface or protuberances (31.1), by the cinctum (21.4) pooled into a large group.
Table. 5. States of the generic characters within stalkless Endogenia (explanation are in the list of characters).
Taxa Characters
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20
Didinium (outgroup) 0 5 2 1 0 1 1 1 1 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Rhizobranchiun 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Peltacineta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Anarma ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Muscophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 1 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Trichophrya 1 3 2 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Brachyosoma 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Dendrosoma 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 1 0
Riftus 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Gorgonosoma 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 1 0
Mucophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Stylophrya 1 3 2 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 0 0
Chenophrya 1 3 2 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Solenophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Astrophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 1 0 1
Erastophrya 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Tetraedrophrya ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Parendosphaera 1 3 2 1 ? 1 1 1 0 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Marinecta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Pseudogemma 1 3 2 1 1 1 0 1 1 0 2 5 2 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Rhyncheta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 2 1 2 3 0
Acoelophthyrius 1 3 2 1 ? 1 1 1 0 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Capriniana 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 2 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Staurophrya 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 0 0 0 1
Sphaeracineta 1 3 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 1
Pottsiocles 1 3 2 1 ? 1 1 1 0 0 2 5 2 2 0 0 1 2 3 0
Endosphaera 1 3 2 1 ? 1 1 1 0 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Taxa Characters
21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36
Didinium (outgroup) 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Rhizobranchiun 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Peltacineta 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Anarma 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1
Muscophrya 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Trichophrya 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 2
Brachyosoma 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Dendrosoma 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 2
Riftus 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Gorgonosoma 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 2
Mucophrya 5 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Stylophrya 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Chenophrya 4 2 3 3 1 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1
Solenophrya 0 0 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 0
Astrophrya 5 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 ?
Erastophrya 4 2 3 3 0 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Tetraedrophrya 5 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 ?
Parendosphaera 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Marinecta 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 1
Pseudogemma 3 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 0
Rhyncheta 0 0 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Acoelophthyrius 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Capriniana 3 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Staurophrya 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Sphaeracineta 5 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 3 0
Pottsiocles 3 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 0 0
Endosphaera 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 1 3 4 3 0
Finally, a compact group is formed by the genera whose representatives bear well-developed actinophores (17.0).
It should be mentioned that, as with all other cladograms, there are many cases of homoplasy in the scheme obtained (ci=55). Nevertheless, the cladogram adequately represented the affinities between taxa.
Since the internal budding derives from semi-circumvaginative one, it is reasonable to suggest that their ancestors were exogemmins with the same mode of reproduction. However, it is unlikely that these were any metacinetids. In our opinion, the ancestors of endogemmins were most likely related to podophryins.
Some tokophryans have almost spherical body, tentacles that are not arranged in fascicles and podophrya-like stages of metamorphosis. These suctorians are probably the ones most close to the parental group.
The ancestors of endogemmins were probably not specialized to inhabiting particular substrates or hosts. At the same time, advanced protection of protomits was favourable for high ecological plasticity of the group.
^ Fig. 16. Phylogenetical relationships of the genera within stalked endogemmin suctorians. The numbers of principal apomorphies correspond to those in the list of characters.
Fig. 17. Phylogenetical relationships of the genera within stalkless endogemmin suctorians. The numbers of principal apomorphies correspond to those in the list of characters.
The endogemmins occupied a wide range of substrates and hosts that caused intensive speciation in the group. As a result, about a half of suctorian genera and species fall into Endogenia Collin, 1912. All morphotypes characteristic of suctorians are represented among endogemmins. All the modes of attachment organelles and all three types of lorica are present in them. The diversity of tentacle morphology is lower than in other groups, but quite advanced differentiation of the tentacles into hunting and sucking ones also took place (Acinetopsis). Thus, all evolutionary tendencies discussed in chapter 2 were manifest in development of endogemmin suctorians.
Phylogenetic relations within evaginogemmins
Morphological characters and features of reproduction in 20 genera were analyzed (Table 6). As a result we obtained more than 100 trees with length 94, ci=74 and ri=85.
It may be inferred from the consensus cladogram that suctorians with inversogemmy fall into four groups
(Fig. 18).
The first cluster includes genera (Tripanococcus, Cyathodinium, Enchelyomorpha, Stylocometes and Discosomatella) distinguished only by one or two apomorphic characters.
The position of Cyathodinium should be discussed. The representatives of the genus from intestine of guinea pigs have a unique type of tentacles (endosprits (11.3)) and ciliary trophont. The genus was previously classified as a taxon of high rank (subclass Neotenea Jankowski, 1978) or transferred into the family Discophryidae (Batisse, 1994). However, in this instance, the genus is situated near with the genera with rod-like tentacles or reduced ones (Tripanococcus).
Parasites of rotifers tissue from the genus Tripa-nococcus are recognized as relatives of discophryins (Batisse, 1994) but positioned near dendrocometids.
In our opinion, the position of both Tripanococcus and Cyathodinium in the scheme (Fig. 18) is associated with several plesiomorphic characters, like the absence of tentacles. However, in our view it is unreasonable to consider the forms specialized to parasitism or commensalism in mammal intestine as relatives of possible ancestors of inversogemmin suctorians.
The genera with rod-like (11.2) or ramified (11.5) tentacles fall in two other clusters. First of all, the unusual position of the genus Stylocometes attracted our attention. A.V. Jankowski (1981) placed Stylocometes, discophryins and the genera Echinophrya, Enchelyomorpha and Discosomatella near the group of genera bearing branched tentacles. At the same time, the genera with ramified tentacles form a compact group.
The genera with clavate tentacles are combined in another large cluster. The genera with a disc-like spread body (Heliophrya and Cyclophrya), disc-like stalked body (Discophrya, Setodiscophrya, Misacineta and Elatodiscophrya) and three loricate suctorian genera (Periacineta, Kormosia and Peridiscophrya) form compact groups within the cluster.
The position of the unloricate genus Prodiscophrya Kormos, 1935 within the latter group can be attributed to similarity of the conjugation mode with that in the genus Kormosia. In turn, for genus Prodiscophrya a variety of plesiomorphic characters (arrangement of the tentacles round the body, spherical cell) is characteristic. In spite of the characters listed, Parapodophrya is probably the most primitive genus of inversogemmins closely allied to the ancestral form of the group.
All inversogemmin suctorians living in fresh waters and freshwater exogemmins related to Podo-phrya or Parapodophrya may be thought as most probable ancestors of the group. The morphological characteristics of representatives of Prodiscophrya from freshwater periphyton partially testify in favour this view.
Table 6. States of the generic characters within Evaginogenia (explanation are in the list of characters).
Taxa Characters
1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20
Didinium (outgroup) 0 5 2 1 0 1 1 1 1 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 1
Prodiscophrya 1 4 2 1 2 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Discophrya 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Setodiscophrya 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Misacineta 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Periacineta 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Kormosia 1 4 2 1 2 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Elatodiscophrya 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Peridiscophrya 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Rhynchophrya 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 0 2 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Heliophrya 1 4 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Cyclophrya 1 4 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 0 0 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Tripanococcus 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 0 1 6 5 3 2 0 3 1 2 3 2
Stylocometes 1 4 2 1 0 1 0 1 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Dendrocometes 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 5 5 3 0 0 0 1 2 3 2
Echinophrya 1 ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Discosomatella 1 ? ? ? ? ? ? 1 ? 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Niscometes 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 5 5 3 1 0 0 1 2 3 2
Cometodendron 1 ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 0 5 5 3 0 0 0 1 1 0 0
Cyathodinium 1 4 2 1 ? 1 0 1 1 0 3 5 3 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
Encheliomorpha 1 4 1 1 ? 0 1 1 1 0 2 5 0 2 0 0 1 2 3 2
living (not moulting) imago of insects turned out to be a convenient substrate for inversogemmins. Notably, these suctorians do not occur on larval stages of insects.
Some inversogemmins live in periphyton. Topical competition with diatoms is an important factor in peryphyton conditions (Dovgal, 1994). The suctorians can avoid the competition colonizing the substrates in streams with critical velocity for diatoms (Dovgal and Kochin, 1995). The formation of spread body is one of the most widespread adaptations among suctorians. We associate the origin of heliophryids with this adaptation.
As for the genus Enchelyomorpha, it is probably an example of early transition to the planktonic mode of life in anaerobic conditions. Consequently, the representative of the genus retained an ancestral character (spherical body) but formed the rod-like tentacles and a swarmer similar to Parapodophrya in parallel.
Judging from some primitive characters of dendro-cometin budding (Batisse, 1975), these suctorians probably diverged early from other inversogemmins under transition to inhabiting crustaceans. The tendency to formation of rod-like tentacles is characteristic for the group that presumably lived under conditions of good aeration in oligotrophic water bodies. Subsequent amplification of the tentacle function at the expense of formation of ramified
^ Fig. 18. Phylogenetical relationships of the genera within evaginogemmin suctorians. The numbers of principal apomorphies correspond to those in the list of characters.
The development of this suctorian group was probably associated with transition to inhabiting freshwater invertebrates.
In part, the phylogeny of the forms that retained capitate tentacles is probably associated with the colonization of water beetles and bugs. Similar to adults of harpacticoid copepods for vermigemmins, a long-
Taxa Characters
21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 2 3 3 © 3 33 6 3 5 3 4 3
Didinium (outgroup) 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Prodiscophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Discophrya 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Setodiscophrya 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 2
Misacineta 1 2 1 0 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 1
Periacineta 1 2 1 3 2 1 0 0 0 1 3 4 3 0
Kormosia 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 2 0
Elatodiscophrya 1 2 1 1 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 1
Peridiscophrya 2 2 3 3 2 1 1 3 4 2 0 0 0 1
Rhynchophrya 1 2 1 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Heliophrya 0 0 0 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Cyclophrya 0 0 0 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 2
Tripanococcus 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Stylocometes 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Dendrocometes 0 0 0 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Echinophrya 1 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Discosomatella 0 0 0 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Niscometes 0 0 0 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Cometodendron 0 1 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Cyathodinium 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
Encheliomorpha 5 2 3 3 2 0 1 3 4 2 3 4 3 0
tentacles and even branching of the body (in Cometo-dendron Swarczewsky, 1928) was associated with life under conditions of insufficient food resources.
The origin of the Cyathodinium and Tripanococcus is yet to be explained. It is possible that in the former, as A.V. Jankowski (1981) and A. Batisse (1994) pointed
out, neoteny took place. The reduction of feeding organelles and features of budding (sequential poly-inversogemmy) in the latter case are unquestionably the results of specialization to parasitism. However, at present possible ancestors of these groups can not be named.
CHAPTER 5. PRINCIPLES OF TAXONOMY AND NEW CLASSIFICATION OF SUCTOREA
As indicated above, similar evolutionary tendencies are manifest in taxa that differ by the mode of budding but probably with different sequences. Thus, relative taxonomical values of the characters are variable in different lineages. For example, vermigemmins are distinguished by the type of tentacles and morphology of actinophores (Fig. 15). In contrast, in exogemmins the branches of the first order are determined by the morphology of adhesive structures and those of the second order, by the type of the tentacles (Fig. 14). In the course of systematic revision we took this into account alongside with our view on the evolution of different structures and the results of cladistic analysis.
As the phylogenetic implications of Chapter 4 suggest, three different levels of affinity can be distinguished in Suctorea. In our opinion the levels are consistent with taxonomical ranks, the highest rank being determined by the type of budding. Other ranks are determined by the combinations of the tentacle type, presence (or absence) of lorica, mode of actinophores, modes of attachment to substrate, etc.
As a result, we conserve the subdivision of the class Suctorea into subordinate taxa by the mode of budding as proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1978, 1980, 1981). Consequently, we accept four subclasses: Exogenia Collin, 1912 (named Tomogenea by A.V. Jankowski), Vermigenia Jankowski, 1978, Endogenia and Evagi-nogenia. Considering that inversogemmy was indicated as a type of cyathodiniid reproduction (Paulin and Corliss, 1969) we classify this group in Evaginogenia and eliminate the subclass Neotenea Jankowski, 1978.
The characters like presence (or absence) of lorica, additional prehensile organelles, features of the life cycle, etc. characterize the orders in exogemmin suctorians. Consequently, we distinguish the following traditional orders within Exogenia: Podophryida Jankowski, 1967 (unloricate forms with spherical or asymmetrical body), Metacinetida Jankowski, 1978 (loricate suctorians) and Ephelotida Raabe, 1964 (suctorians with additional prehensile tentacles). The order names Paracinetida Jankowski, 1978 and Urnulida Jankowski, 1978 are synonymized with
Metacinetida Jankowski, 1978 and Allantosomatida Jankowski, 1978 with Podophryida Jankowski, 1967.
As indicated above, the monotypical genus Tachy-blaston is usually placed near ephelotid suctorians. For the type species ofthe genus (T. ephelotensis Martin 1909, Fig. 20, J) a unique life cycle is characteristic. The trophont of Tachyblaston is entirely immersed into the host’s (Ephelota sp.) cell but retains the contact with the environment (Grell, 1950, 1967). After the growth period a succession of buddings producing several ciliary swarmers occurs. After the adhesion to the substrate [hydroids (Collin, 1912) or algae (Gassovsky, 1916)] the swarmer produces a loricate “dactylophrya” stage. This stage was previously (Collin, 1909, 1912) described as a separate suctorian genus and species Dactylophrya roscovita Collin, 1909. It was found (Grell, 1950) that the structures of “dactylophrya” indicated as “bottle-like” tentacles are in fact the next migratory stage — dactylozoits. Dactilozoits lack ciliature and flotate passively until the contact with a host cell (Grell, 1967) where a new trophont forms. The organism with such a unique set of characters should undoubtedly classified into a separate taxon of a high rank. Thus, following A.V. Jankowski, we accept the order Tachyblastonida Jankowski, 1978 with a single family Tachyblastonidae Grell, 1970.
A.V. Jankowski (1978) proposed to erect the order Phalacrocleptida (with unclear systematic position) for small oval suctorians without stalk and lorica but with numerous very short tentacles on the basal body surface. The single species Phalacrocleptes verruciformis (Fig.
19, I) paraziting on polychaetes is included into the order.
Phalacrocleptes is an extremely specialized parasite that lacks both ciliature and infraciliature at all stages of the life cycle. The tentacles are also reduced, very short, only with an external microtubular layer and a single haptocyst (Lom and Kozloff, 1967). They probably serve for attachment only. According to E. Kozloffs (1966) observations, P. verruciformis reproduces by binary fission (Fig. 8, B).
In our opinion according to the combination of characters these organisms should be placed into the subclass Exogenia as the order Phalacrocleptida Jankowski, 1978 with one family Phalacrocleptidae Kozloff, 1966.
Within the order Podophryida we accept the traditional families Podophryidae Butschli, 1889, Allantosomatidae Jankowski, 1978 and the family Severonidae Jankowski, 1981 proposed for the forms that attach to the substrate by numerous short protuberances of the body.
The families Metacinetidae Butshli, 1889 and Paracinetidae Jankowski, 1978 are included in the order Metacinetida.
The taxonomical rank and systematic position of some taxa need further comments. In particular, it concerns the family Urnulidae Fraipont, 1878 that was proposed for ectoparasite suctorians with stylotheca and a single (or from two to three according to early authors (Claparede and Lachmann, 1861) agile tentacle. The family was not accepted by several authors. However, A.V. Jankowski (1978, p. 493) elevated their taxono-mical rank up to the order with a short diagnosis: «small loricate parasitic forms with a single apical tentacle».
In fact, the representatives of the group are related to metacinetid suctorians and differ from them only by oligomerization of the tentacles and their mobility. These characters are enough to retain a separate genus Urnula Claparede et Lachmann, 1861 but insufficient for the erection of an order or a family. Therefore we transferr the genus Urnula into Metacinetidae Collin, 1912. The name Urnulidae Fraipont, 1878 is synony-mized with Metacinetidae Collin, 1912.
The genus Praethecacineta Matthes, 1956 had been included into the family Thecacinetidae Matthes, 1956 but was later transferred (Dovgal, 1996) into the subclass Exogenia and order Metacinetida on the basis of the mode of budding (external with laterally positioned ciliary protomit) and the type of lorica with the rank of a family Praethecacinetidae Dovgal, 1996.
A.V. Jankowski (1982) elevated a new family Beckmaniidae with a single genus and species Beck-mania baikalensis Jankowski, 1982. However, the type species of the genus Beckmania Jankowski, 1982 was transferred by the author (Jankowski, 1987) into the genus Metacineta without any comments on the family. Since the type genus was synonymized with Metacineta, the name Beckmaniidae Jankowski, 1982 is a younger synonym of Metacinetidae.
The most complicate situation has probably formed around taxonomy and nomenclature of ectoparasitic exogemmins attaching to the host (ciliates) by single rod-like tentacle. The species with these characters are usually assigned to the family Pseudogemmidae Jankowski, 1978, but various forms from this family reproduce by different modes of budding (Kormos, 1935b, Jankowski, 1981). This generated a need for the assignment of representatives of the family with various modes ofbudding to the different subclasses. The group of genera with exogemmy must be related to Exogenia respectively.
Semi-circumvaginative budding with lateral protomit position is characteristic of the genera Pseudogemmides, Manuelophrya and Mistarcon (see Chapter 3). The genera must be transferred into Metacinetida Jankowski, 1978 on the basis of these characters. However, rod-like tentacles are characteristic of genera in contrast with other metacinetid
suctorians. Taking these considerations into account, we propose to classify the genera into a separate family. By virtue of the fact that the guide of D. Matthes and others (1988) has gained wide popularity the genus Manuelophrya is best known to date. Thus, following the recommendation of 64A of International Code of Zoological Nomenclature (International Code of Zoological Nomenclature, 2000) we indicate Manue-loprya Matthes, 1988 as the type genus of the new family. Consequently, the family receives the name Manuelo-phryidae.
Family Manuelophryidae Dovgal, fam. n.
Suctorians that attach to the host’s cell by a single rod-like tentacle or to the host’s stalk by a basal protuberance of the stylotheca. There are both loricate (with stylotheca) and unloricate forms. The body is spherical or sac-like in shape. The macronucleus is spherical. Reproduction by exogemmic budding with formation of lateral protomit partially submerged into parental cell (semi-circumvaginative budding). The type genus ofthe family is Manuelophrya Matthes, 1988.
Habitat. Ectoparasites of sessile ciliates.
Within the order Ephelotida Raabe, 1964 we accept only the family Ephelotidae Kent, 1882.
A.V. Jankowski (1978) erected the order Ophryo-cephalida for small unloricate suctorians with a stalk, a single agile tentacle and reproduction by polyexo-gemmy. The family Ophryocephalidae Jankowski, 1978 with a single genus Ophryocephalus was included into the order by the author. The type species of the genus (O. capitatus Wailes, 1925, Fig. 21, G) is the parasite at ephelotid suctorians.
Representatives of the genus Ophryocephalus are similar to ephelotid suctorians both in the manner of reproduction and swarmer morphology. It is highly probable that they are ephelotid suctorians specialized to parasitism. Thus, we have no reason to erect a taxon with a high rank. It is expedient to synonymize the name Ophryocephalida Jankowski, 1978 with Ephelotida Raabe, 1964 and Ophryocephalidae Jankowski, 1978 with Ephelotidae Kent, 1882.
A.V. Jankowski (1978) also proposed to unite all unstalked ephelotins into the family Tunicophryidae Jankowski, 1978. However, we not adopt this character as a character of the family. The name Tunicophryidae Jankowski is synonymized with Ephelotidae.
As indicated in Fig. 15, high taxa are separated by the type of the tentacles (in Vermigenia) or by combination of tentacle morphology with presence of the lorica (in thecacinetid suctorians). Consequently, we distinguish the order Spelaeophryida Jankowski, 1978 with capitate tentacles and the order
Ophryodendrida Jankowski, 1975 with rod-like tentacles.
Within order Spelaeophryida the family Spelaeo-phryidae Batisse, 1975 including stretched forms without actinophores was conserved. The genus Cucumophrya Kunz, 1936 is also transferred into this family based on the characters mentioned. The families Lecanophryidae Jankowski, 1973, Dendrosomididae Jankowski, 1981, Dentacinetidae Batisse, 1992 and Thecacinetidae Matthes, 1956 are also included. The name of the order Dendrosomidida Jankowski, 1978 is synonymized with Spelaeophryida Jankowski, 1978.
Within the limits of the order Ophryodendrida Jankowski, 1975 we consider the suctorian family Ophryodendridae Stein, 1867 with characteristic “proboscis-like” actinophores and Rhabdophryidae Jankowski, 1978 with actinophores that are body protuberances or with no actinophores at all.
A.V. Jankowski (1981) described the genus Crevicometes and classified it into a new family Crevicometidae Jankowski, 1981 based on the presence of cylindrical actinophore and the absence of the stalk. According to the results of our investigation (Fig. 15), the genus Crevicometes falls into a common cluster with ophryodendrid suctorians due to the presence of a typical “ophryodenrid” actinophore. In conrast with A.V. Jankowski’s opinion, the genus is unrelated to rhabdophryid suctorians. There are strong grounds for transferring Crevicometes into Ophryodendridae. The name Crevicometidae Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Ophryodendridae respectively.
The family Stylostomatidae was proposed by A. Batisse (1975) for ophryodendrid suctorians with a spindle-like body, apical actinophores and a well-developed stalk. The type genus is Stylostoma. The genera Asterifer and Thisarcon Jankowski, 1981 were also classified into the family. A. Batisse’s family was elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1978) to the suborder Stylostomatina Jankowski, 1978. However, suctorians with different types of tentacles and actinophores are found in Stylostomatidae. Moreover, the name Stylostoma was synonymized with Ophryodendron (see Chapter 3). Consequently, the name Stylostomatidae is synonymized with Ophryodendridae and name Stylostomatina is synonymized with Ophryodendrida.
The family Corethriidae was erected by the author (Jankowski, 1978) for unstalked ophryodendrid suctorians with a disc-like body. Both shape of cell and absence of stalk are at best criteria for a genus and not a family. The name Corethriidae Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Ophryodendridae.
The ophryodendrids with mucous lorica were classified (Jankowski, 1978) into a separate family Loricodendridae Jankowski, 1978. However, both
family and type genus (Loricodendron Jankowski, 1973) proposed by A.V. Jankowski were not accepted by A. Batisse (1994) due to the absence of the lorica in these organisms (there is “pseudolorica” only). In our opinion the presence of mucous lorica is not a good reason for elevation of the ophryodendrid family. The name Loricodendridae is a younger synonym of Ophryodendridae.
The suborder Asteriferina Jankowski, 1978 with a single family Asteriferidae Jankowski, 1978 was proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1978) for suctorians from the genus Asterifer with a rosette of 6 flattened actinophores. In our view neither shape nor number of actinophores can serve as criteria of a suborder. The erection of the suborder Ophryodendrina Jankowski, 1978 thus also looses its meaning. The names Asteri-ferina and Ophryodendrina are synonymized with Ophryodendrida.
The new suborder Nemertodendrina Jankowski, 1981 and family Nemertodendridae Jankowski, 1981 were elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for the genus Nemertodendron that had been described by the author earlier (Jankowski, 1978). However, as was noted above we synonymized the generic name. Consequently, Nemertodendrina is a younger synonym of Ophryo-dendrida and Nemertodendridae is a younger synonym of Ophryodendridae.
As mentioned above, the morphology of adhesive organelles mainly determines the orders in Endogenia. Thus, we distinguish the following orders within the subclass: Acinetida Raabe, 1964 (ciliates attaching by a stalk or stalk-like part of stylotheca); Trichophryida Jankowski, 1978 (ciliates attaching to the substrate by body surface or cell protuberance); Endosphaeriida Jankowski, 1978 (with a single family Endosphaeriidae Jankowski, 1978 whose representatives are intracellular and tissue parasites lacking both attaching organelles and tentacles).
In the order Acinetida there are no distinct clusters of loricate and unloricate suctorians (Fig. 16). Thus, we do not accept the suborders Tokophryina Jankowski, 1978 and Acinetina Jankowski, 1978 that were proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1978). It is our opinion that loricate forms must be classified into two families: Acinetidae Ehrenberg, 1838 and Acinetopsidae Jankowski, 1978 (the latter with unique prehensile tentacles). Based on the results of cladistic analysis we transfer the genus Squalorophrya Goodrich et Jahn, 1943 with mucous lorica into Acinetidae though the mode of reproduction of these suctorians is still unknown.
It is A.V. Jankowski’s (1978) opinion that all endo-gemmins with mucous lorica must be classified into the family Cryptophryidae Jankowski, 1978. On the contrary, we consider that the mode of lorica is a generic
and not a familial character. The name Cryptophryidae is synonymized with Acinetidae.
We classify the majority of stalked unloricate endogemmins into the family Tokophryidae. Para-stylophrya is transferred into this family based on the results of phylogenetic analysis. The family Dactylo-stomatidae Jankowski, 1978 whose representatives possess unusual bottle-like tentacles.
Particular attention must be given to the systematic position of Corynophryidae Jankowski, 1981. The family was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for marine suctorians with sac-like or spherical body, a stalk with an apical widening and exogemmic budding. In the opinion of A.V. Jankowski, coryno-phryids are descendants of some representatives of Paracineta that lack the lorica. However, this author did not mention his own observations of coryno-phryid reproduction.
It was correctly indicated by C. Curds (1987) that internal budding was mentioned in the diagnosis of the type genus (Corynophrya) of the family (Kahl, 1934). Therefore we transfer Corynophryidae into Acinetida.
As it was indicated above (see Chapter 4), the complex of morphological characters with high taxonomical value is associated with tentacle type. The presence of a unique mode of tentacles is sufficient for erection of taxa with a high rank. In this connection we classify endogemmins with funnel-like tentacles that also isolated in the scheme (Fig. 16) into a separate family Choanophryidae.
Family Choanophryidae Dovgal, fam. n.
Suctorians with unique funnel-like tentacles that lack the inner microtubular layer of the axonema, specialized to feeding on liquid remains of host’s food. The macronucleus is spherical or ellipsoid. The type genus of the family is Choanophrya Hartog, 1901.
Habitat. Commensals of freshwater crustaceans.
Among unstalked suctorians from the order Trichophryida Jankowski, 1978 sessile and planktonic forms with unramified body stand out. These suctorians are classified into the family Trichophryidae Butschli, 1879.
We also classify into a separate family Rhynchetidae Jankowski, 1978 parasitic and commensal suctorians with agile tentacles that inhabit freshwater crustaceans. The family is transferred from the order Acinetida into Trichophryida based on the absence of stalk or its homologues. The genus Riftus Jankowski, 1981 is also transferred into the Rhynchetidae. In A.V. Jankowski’s (1981) opinion this genus is related to tokophryins. However, a distinct affinity between the Riftus and Rhyncheta escaped the attention of the author.
Consequently, the name Riftidae Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Rhynchetidae.
Following A.V. Jankowski (1978) we group sucto-rians that attach to the substrate by an adhesive ring (cinctum or hemicinctum) into the family Erasto-phryidae Jankowski, 1978.
However, the status of several taxa calls for additional discussion. For example, we do not accept the mode of life as a good reason for erection of an order or a family if it is not associated with any morphological adaptations.
Thus, we synonymize the names Marinectida Jankowski, 1981 and Marinectidae Jankowski, 1978 proposed for planktonic suctorians with Trichophryida Jankowski, 1978 and Trichophryidae Butschli, 1879 respectively. The presence of symmetrically arranged actinophores (“star-shaped body”) in planktonic trichophryids from the genus Staurophrya provides the basis for elevation of a separate family Staurophryidae Jankowski, 1978. In fact the diagnosis ofthe type genus is consistent with the diagnosis of the family Tricho-phryidae. The name Staurophryidae is a younger synonym of Trichophryidae.
In our opinion the presence of massive mucous lorica (“heliotheca”) in planktonic forms is a generic and not a familial character. Consequently, the name Mucophryidae Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Trichophryidae.
A.V. Jankowski (1981) thought that the presence of a special type of tentacles (with a flattened knob) is the principal characteristic of the family Actino-branchiidae Jankowski, 1978. However, it is clear from the data ofW. Foissner and others (Foissner et al., 1995) and our observations (Fig. 12) that the flattened knob of capitate tentacle is common among suctorians and can not be used even as a generic character. We synonymize the name Actinobranchiidae with Tricho-phryidae.
The family of “ichthyophilous trichophryans” was described by A.V. Jankowski (1978) “for small sessile forms with a wide basodisc and from one to two fascicles of the tentacles” and named Caprinianidae Jankowski,
1978. As discussed above, the representatives of the family type genus Capriniana attach to the host’s gills by specialized tentacles. However, this character is not sufficient for erection of a family. Thus, the name Caprinianidae Jankowski, 1978 is a younger synonym of Trichophryidae.
The family Peltacinetidae Jankowski, 1981 was erected for small triangular flattened forms with funnellike tentacles arranged in rows. In A.V. Jankowski’s (1981, p. 85) opinion, the type genus of the family (Peltacineta Jankowski, 1978) “...unquestionably is derived from choanophryans”. However, funnel-like
tentacles are not mentioned in the diagnosis of the type species of the genus (Trichophrya cordiformis Schewia-koff, 1893; Fig. 25, M) and cannot be seen in W. Schewiakoff’s (1893) figures. Whether or not A.V. Jankowski investigated this species remains unknown. Until the details of tentacle morphology are refined, we conserve the genus Peltacineta within Tricho-phryidae. Consequently, the name Peltacinetidae is synonymized with Trichophryidae.
A.V. Jankowski (1978) also indicated Discoso-matellidae Jankowski, 1978 as a separate family within Trichophryida. As discussed above (Chapter 3), we transferred the type genus of the family (Discosomatella) into Stylocometidae. This action is supported by cladistic analysis (Fig. 18). The name Discosoma-tellidae is a younger synonym of Stylocometidae.
The systematic position and taxonomic rank of loricate unstalked suctorians requires a special discussion. The genus Solenophrya with a single species S. crassa Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 was erected for “unstalked acinetians” (Claparede and Lachmann, 1859). A.V. Jankowski (1981, p. 114) believed that “.the species (S. crassa) was redescribed as Cyclophrya magna and Craspedophrya erhardi at a later time”. In the opinion of this author, E. Claparede and C. Lachmann did not indicate the ramified macronucleus characteristic of the genus Cyclophrya. However, in F. Holm’s figure (1925, Fig. 10, p. 399) an ellipsoid macronucleus can be seen in Solenophrya. Thus, there is no need to rename Heliophryidae into Soleno-phryidae Jankowski, 1981 as was proposed by A.V. Jankowski (1981).
Several species that were described as representatives of Solenophrya (Penard, 1914, 1920a; Holm, 1925, etc.) are transferred into Metacinetina (Rieder, 1985). Most of the solenophryans described by E. Penard (1914, 1920a) are conserved in the genus (Matthes et al., 1988). The mode of reproduction of these species still unknown, hence we left them in Trichophryida with the rank of the family Soleno-phryidae. The genus of planktonic loricate endo-gemmins Sphaeracineta, whose systematic position was not indicated by the author (Jankowski, 1987) and two planktonic genera with mucous lorica (Tetraedrophrya and Mucophrya) are also transferred into the family.
Cladistic analysis brought parasitic loricate endogemmins into a common cluster with Solenophrya. The order Pseudogemmida (with the family Pseudo-gemmidae Jankowski, 1978) was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1978). In his opinion, pseudogemmins are the ancestral group of intracellular parasitic endos-phaeriid. In turn, A. Batisse (1994) combined both pseudogemmins and endosphaeriids within the family Endosphaeriidae.
In our view, the hypothesis on the affinity between pseudogemmin and endosphaeriid suctorians is deficient. Contrary to the endosphaeriids, the swarmers of pseudogemmins are similar with trichophryid buds. Thus we believe that pseudogemmin suctorians must be classified within Trichophryida in the rank of the family Pseudogemmidae.
Endogemmin genera with a ramified body fall into a single cluster for which we conserved the family Dendrosomidae Butschli, 1889. It should be mentioned that A.V. Jankowski (1978) proposed to classify such forms in the order Dendrosomatida Jankowski, 1978 including two suborders: Dendrosomatina Jankowski, 1978 (with a ramified body) and Stylo-phryina Jankowski, 1978 (with a set of actinophores). In our opinion this is a poor basis for description of taxa of a high rank. The names Dendrosomatida, Dendrosomatina and Stylophryina are synonymized with Trichophryida, whereas the name Stylophryidae Jankowski, 1978 is synonymized with Dendrosomidae.
Subclass Evaginogenia is a suctorian group whose classification was most developed (see Jankowski,
1981). At the same time, the group includes the majority of taxa described by D. Matthes (1954a, 1954b, 1954c, 1954d). Consequently, there are many points to be discussed in connection with this subclass.
There are two distinct groups of genera with different type of tentacles in the scheme of phylo-genetical relations (Fig. 18). In our view, they correspond to orders Discophryida Jankowski, 1975 (with capitate tentacles) and Dendrocometida Raabe, 1964 (with rod-like and ramified tentacles).
The order Discophryida was subclassified by A.V. Jankowski (1981) into two suborders: Discophryina Jankowski, 1981 including unloricate forms and Stylocometina Jankowski, 1981 with unstalked sessile forms with rod-like tentacles. However, in our scheme of phylogenetic relations (Fig. 18) the stylocometins are positioned in the cluster adjacent with dendro-cometins. Consequently, we transfer the group into Dendrocometida with conservation of the taxonomic rank. Therefore, the elevation of a special suborder for discophryin suctorians looses its meaning. The name Discophryina is a younger synonym of Discophryida Jankowski, 1975.
Within Discophryida we distinguish a family of unloricate inversogemmins with capitate tentacles — Discophryidae Collin, 1912. The family of ectoparasitic suctorians (Rhynchophryidae Jankowski, 1978) with contractile agile tentacles is also applied. The podo-phrya-like suctorians with anisogamy are classified in the family Prodiscophryidae Jankowski, 1978.
The family Coronodiscophryidae Jankowski, 1981 was proposed for discophryins with unflattened body
and basally placed tentacles but the name of the type genus was synonymized in Chapter 3. Thus, we believe that the name Coronodiscophryidae is a younger synonym of Discophryidae Collin, 1912.
The same is true for the families Multifasciculatidae Jankowski, 1981 with isolated apical and lateral fascicles of tentacles and Cyathodiscophryidae Jankowski, 1981 with semilorica. The type genus of the former family Multifasciculatum Goodrich et Jahn, 1943 was synonymized with Discophrya by D. Matthes and others (1988), whereas the type genus of the latter (Cyatho-discophrya) was synonymized with Discophrya in Chapter 3 of this work. Consequently, the names Multifasciculatidae and Cyathodiscophryidae are synonymized with Discophryidae Collin, 1912.
All genera of loricate discophryins are classified into the family Periacinetidae Jankowski, 1978.
A separate family Caracatharinidae Jankowski, 1981 was erected by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for loricate suctorians with a single apical fascicle of tentacles and a ribbon-like or ramified macronucleus. However, the number of tentacle fascicles is unsuitable as a criterion of the family. The name Caracatharinidae Jankowski, 1981 is a younger synonym of Periacinetidae.
The new order Heliophryida was elevated by A.V. Jankowski (1981) for disc-like, spread upon the substrate suctorians with clavate tentacles. It is evident from Fig. 18 that such forms are positioned into a common group with discophryins. In fact, the heliophryins attach to the substrate not by “special secretion” as A.V. Jankowski (1981) claimed but by a wide adhesive disc which is a modified stalk (Batisse,
1994). This suggests an affinity between heliophryids and discophryids. Thus, we conserve the family Heliophryidae within the order Discophryida. The name Heliophryida is synonymized with Disco-phryida.
In the order Dendrocometida Raabe, 1964 A.V. Jankowski (1978) distinguished two families (Dendro-cometidae and Cometodendridae Jankowski, 1978) or (Jankowski, 1981), one family with two subfamilies. However, the suborder Stylocometina was transferred into Dendrocometida. Thus, the forms with ramified tentacles must be classified into another suborder Dendrocometina.
Suborder Dendrocometina Dovgal, subord. n. (non Raabe, 1964 in Batisse, 1994)
Hemispherical, disc-like, spread over substrate or vase-like unstalked suctorians. The adhesion to the substrate is by means of the basal body protuberance or a tectinous adhesive disc which is a modified stalk. The macronucleus is spherical or ellipsoid. The presence of
ramified tentacles is the key characteristic of the suborder.
The species of anaerobic ciliates Enchelyomorpha vermicularis (Smith, 1899) (Fig. 29, I) was earlier assigned to actinobolins (with the rank of the family Enchelyomorphidae) based on the pattern of ciliature and presence of the tentacles.
However, electron microscopical investigation has shown (Foissner and Foissner, 1995, Foissner et al.,
1995) that in the tentacle of E. vermicularis there are a microtubular axonema and haptocysts characteristic for suctorians.
First W. Foissner and others (1995) considered the species in question as a swarmer of an unidentified suctorian. The trophonts and initial stages of budding of the species were investigated (Foissner and Foissner, 1995).
Although there is some similarity in anlage of protomits in enchelyomorphs and cyathodiniids (Foissner and Foissner, 1995) the data available are insufficient to state that the reproduction of Enchelyomorpha corresponds to inversogemmy. Similarity between swarmers of E. vermicularis and Parapodophrya in our view is associated with parallelism in larval adaptations.
The swarmer of Enchelyomorpha is an example of high specialization to anaerobic conditions. Similar to mostanaerobic protists, lack of mitochondria and presence of hydrogenosomes and autophagous vacuoles are characteristic for enchelyomorphs. It is possible that mutualism with bacteria allows the swarmer to have a longer life than that of trophont. Abundant observations of migratory stages and only rare records of trophonts indirectly point to this. Additional investigations on the morphology and life cycle of this suctorian ciliate are necessary to clarify its systematic position. For the present we place Enchelyomorphidae into the suborder Stylocometina based on the results of phylogenetic analysis.
The systematic position of the genus Echinophrya with unknown mode of budding has been obscure for a long time. B. Swarczewsky (1928c) thought that the genus is related to discophryins. However, the genus was found in a common cluster with Stylocometes in cladistic analysis. Thus, Echinophrya is transferred into Stylocometidae Jankowski, 1978.
Thus we distinguish two suborders within the order Dendrocometida: Stylocometina Jankowski, 1981 with the families Stylocometidae Jankowski, 1981 and Enchelyomorphidae Augustin et Foissner, 1992 and Dendrocometina subord. n. with the families Dendro-cometidae Stein, 1851 and Cometodendridae Jankowski, 1978.
The systematic position and taxonomical rank of suctorian commensals of guinea pigs intestine (genus
Cyathodinium) calls for a special discussion. Contrary to the other suctorians, cyathodiniid possess ciliature throughout the life cycle. A variety of inversogemmy with simultaneous formation of two protomits is also characteristic of the group (Paulin et al., 1969).
A.V. Jankowski (1975) proposed to classify cyathodiniids into the order with an unclear systematic position and later (Jankowski, 1978) into the subclass Neotenea with a short diagnosis: “neotenic forms from the intestine of guinea pigs (Cavia) that feed and divide at the stage of tomit”.
A. Batisse (1994) in turn placed the family Cyathodiniidae da Cunha, 1914 into the suborder Discophryina Batisse, 1957 based on the characteristics of their budding.
As noted above, we do not accept A.V. Jankowski’s subclass. However, the combination of characters makes us classify the group in the rank of the order Cyathodiniida within Evaginogenia.
The systematic position ofthe endoparasites ofrotifers from the genus Tripanococcus invites further investigation. A.V. Jankowski (1981) placed the genus into Endo-sphaeriida. A. Batisse (1994) discussed the genus within the family Discophryidae based on the presence of inversogemmy investigated by Penard (1920b).
In our opinion there is a reason for transferring the Tripanococcus into Evaginogenia. However, the representatives of the genus possess several unique characteristics such as reduction of tentacles and the mode of inversogemmy. We believe that on the strength of these arguments Tripanococcus must be classified in a taxon with a rank equal to that of convergently similar endosphaeriids. Therefore we erect a new order Tripanococcina ord. n. and family Tripanococcidae fam. n.
Order Tripanococcina Dovgal, ord. n.
Suctorian ciliates that lack tentacles, stalk and lorica. The body is sac-like. Swarmers ellipsoid, flattened laterally and with a few longitudinal kineties. Reproduction by sequential polyinversogemmy is characteristic of the group. The order includes one family Tripanococcidae Dovgal, fam. n. (with characteristics of the order). The type genus of the family is Tripanococcus Stein, 1867.
Habitat. Parasites of tissue of freshwater rotifers.
Thus, as a result of systematic revision we accept the subdivision of the class Suctorea into four subclasses with 15 orders, 2 suborders, 41 families and 124 genera. The summarised classification is presented below.
Class Suctorea Claparede et Lachmann, 1859
Ciliates lacking cytostome but with from several to many tentacles (rarely no tentacles). The tentacles have
an axonema with two layers of microtubules and a special kind of extrusomes — haptocysts. Cilia are absent in trophonts (though there is infraciliature). There are contractile vacuoles but no cytoproct. Migratory stages are produced by different modes of budding and generally bear ciliature. Conjugation by both isogamy and anisogamy. The body shape varies from spherical to ramified. The cells often have a non-contractile stalk produced by scopuloid. The size of body from 10 to 5000 |j,m. Commensals or parasites of various water animals (mostly invertebrates) and plants; fouling organisms; plankters. There are also endocommensals of digestive tract of Equidae, Caviidae, Proboscidea and Rhinocerotidae.
Subclass Exogenia Collin, 1912
The suctorians reproducing by exogenous (mono-gemmic or polygemmic) budding or by binary fission. As a rule, migratory stages are ciliary (except Phalac-rocleptes). Trophont stages are often stalked, loricate or unloricate.
Order Podophryida Jankowski, 1967
= Allantosomatida Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Small, pyriform or spherical suctorians with tentacles evenly distributed or (rarely) arranged in fascicles. Actinophores are absent. The stalk usually present, except in planktonic forms or symbionts of mammal intestine. Reproduction by binary fission or monogemmic budding.
Family Podophryidae Butschli, 1889
Suctorians with spherical or sac-like body, tentacles evenly distributed or (rarely) arranged in fascicles. Actinophores absent. The stalk usually present, but trophonts of several species lack adhesive organelles. Tentacles are capitate, rarely with basal widenings. Reproduction by monogemmic exogemmy with formation of apical protomit. The binary fission is also present. Swarmers unflattened and with tentacles. A stalked cyst with transverse circular ribs is characteristic of the representatives of the family.
Habitat. Sessile and planktonic forms, also parasites of other ciliates.
1. Podophrya Ehrenberg, 1834
Podophrya fixa (O.F. Muller, 1786) (Type species -T.S., Fig. 19, B), P. benedeni Fraipont, 1877, P. bengalensis Ghosh, 1929, P. brevipoda Sand, 1899, P. comosa Penard, 1920, P. fallax Dingfelder, 1961, P. globulifera Kahl, 1931, P. gracilis Calkins, 1902, P. halophila Kahl, 1934, P. hungarica K. Kormos, 1961,
P. libera Perty, 1852, P. macrostyla Stokes, 1885, P. poculum Allmann, 1875, P. sandi Collin, 1912.
2. Parapodophrya Kahl, 1931 Parapodophrya soliformis (Lauterborn, 1901) (T.S.,
Fig. 19, A), P. atypica Gonnert, 1935, P. denticulata Kahl, 1931, P. nigricans Kahl, 1931, P. palmigera (Penard, 1920), P. sparganium Kahl, 1931, P. typha Kahl, 1931.
3. Sphaerophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 Sphaerophrya magna Maupas, 1881 (T.S., Fig. 19,
C), S. amoeboides (Sand, 1899) comb. n. for Tricho-phrya amoeboides Sand, 1899, S. canelli Clement-Iftode, 1967, S. doliolum Penard, 1920, S. epizoica (Hammann, 1952) comb. n. for Podophrya epizoica Hammann, 1952, S. grelli Diekmann, 1985 comb. n. for Podophrya grelli Diekmann, 1985, S. hydrostatica Engelmann, 1878, S. iftodi(Curds, 1986) comb. n. for P. iftodi Curds, 1986, S. insolita (Jankowski, 1973), S. mamillata Oppenheim, 1976, S. natans Penard, 1920,
S. ovata (Weisse, 1847), S. parameciorum Maupas, 1881, S. parasitica (Faure-Fremiet, 1945) comb. n. for P. parasitica Faure-Fremiet, 1945, S. parurolepti Foissner, 1980, S. pusilla Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, S. sol Metschnikoff, 1864, S. stentoris Maupas, 1881, S. stokesii Mamaeva, 1979, S. terricola Foissner, 1986, S. urostylae (Maupas, 1881).
Family Allantosomatidae Jankowski, 1978
Suctorians with a sac-like unflattened body. Capitate or rod-like tentacles are arranged in fascicles or rows at the poles of body or are evenly distributed. There are additional folds of the tentacle axonema. Reproduction by binary fission.
Habitat. Endocommensals of digestive tract of mammals (Equidae, Proboscidea and Rhinocerotidae).
1. Allantosoma Gassovsky, 1918
Allantosoma intestinalis Gassovsky, 1918 (T.S., Fig.
19, E and Fig. 8, A), A. cucumis Strelkow, 1939.
2. Allantoxena Jankowski, 1978
Allantoxena biseriale (Strelkow, 1939) (T.S., Fig. 19, G), A. japonensis (Imai, 1979).
3. Arcosoma Jankowski, 1967
Arcosoma dicorniger (Hsiung, 1928) (T.S., Fig. 19,
F), A. brevicorniger(Hsiung, 1928), A. lineare (Strelkov, 1939).
4. Vanhovenia Dovgal, gen. n.
Vanhovenia multisuctores (Van Hoven et al., 1998) (T.S., Fig. 19, D) comb. n. for Allantosoma multisuctores Van Hoven et al. , 1998.
Family Severonidae Jankowski, 1981
Suctorians with a spherical body attaching to the substrate by protuberances on the basal body surface.
Capitate tentacles with wide basal parts and well-developed knobs are evenly distributed on the apical body surface.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of marine sponges.
1. Severonis Jankowski, 1981 Severonis spongiarum Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig.
19, H).
Order Phalacrocleptida Jankowski, 1978
Suctorians with a small body of flattened hemispherical shape, with neither cilia nor infraciliature at all stages of life cycle. There are very short tentacles that serve for attachment. Reproduction by binary fission.
Family Phalacrocleptidae Kozloff, 1966
With characteristics of the order.
Habitat. Parasitic on polychaete annelids.
1. Phalacrocleptes Kozloff, 1966 Phalacrocleptes verruciformis Kozloff, 1966 (T.S., Fig. 19, I and Fig. 8, B).
Order Metacinetida Jankowski, 1978
= Paracinetida Jankowski, 1978 syn.n.
= Urnulida Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Usually loricate suctorians with a spherical or sac-like body. Capitate (rarely rod-like) tentacles arranged in fascicles or rows on the apical body surface. Reproduction by exogemmic, mainly semi-circum-vaginative budding.
Family Metacinetidae Butschli, 1889
= Urnulidae Fraipont, 1878 syn.n.
= Beckmaniidae Jankowski, 1982 syn. n.
Suctorians with a spherical body attached to the edge of apical opening of the stylotheca. The aperture ofthe lorica often with cuts. Capitate tentacles are single or arranged in fascicles or rows. Reproduction is by semi-circumvaginative budding with laterally positioned protomit. Swarmers are ovoid with spiral ciliary rows.
Habitat. Representatives live on inanimate substrates, water invertebrates and plants and as parasites of other ciliates.
1. Metacineta Butschli, 1889 = Discacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Metacineta mystacina (Ehrenberg, 1831) (T.S., Fig.
19, J), M. acuminata Stokes, 1887, M. angularis (Maskell, 1887), M. baikalensis (Jankowski, 1982), M. flos (Maskell, 1887), M. longipes (Mereschkowsky, 1877), M. macrocaulis (Stokes, 1887), M. micraster (Penard, 1914), M. rossica (Jankowski, 1981), M. stagnatilis (Stokes, 1886), M. yoshii Nozawa, 1938.
2. Urnula Claparede et Lachmann, 1861 Urnula epistylidis Claparede et Lachmann, 1861 (T.S., Fig. 19, K), U. turpissima Kormos K., 1958.
Family Paracinetidae Jankowski, 1978
Suctorians usually with a spherical or sac-like body. The opening of the stylotheca without notches. Tentacles capitate, arranged into a single apical fascicle or row. Reproduction by regular exogemmic or semi-circumvaginative budding with formation of apical protomit.
Habitat. Representatives live in soil, on inanimate substrates, marine and freshwater invertebrates and plants.
1. Paracineta Collin, 1912
= Miracineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Flectacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Faltacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Paracinetapatula (Claparede et Lachmann, 1861) (T.S., Fig. 19, L), P. dadayi Kahl, 1934, P. divisa (Fraipont, 1877), P. gaetani Sewell, 1951, P. hawniensis (Ehrenberg, 1838), P. irregularis Dons, 1927, P. jorisi (Sand, 1895), P. karanakarani Santhakumari, 1986, P. lineata Jones, 1973, P. livadiana (Mereschkowsky, 1881), P. meridionalis Jones, 1973, P. moebiusi Kahl,
1934, P. neapolitana (Daday, 1886), P. saifulae (Mereschkowsky, 1877), P. scanica Allgen, 1934, P. scottocalani (Sewell, 1951), P. stresemanni Allgen, 1951, P. trichophora (Allgen, 1951) comb. n. for Thecacineta trichophora Allgen, 1951, P. tuba (Zelinka, 1914), P. vorticelloides (Fraipont, 1877), P. anisostyla (Fernan-dez-Leborans et al., 1996) comb. n. for Corynophrya anisostyla Fernandez-Leborans et al., 1996.
2. Actinocyathula Corliss, 1960 Actinocyathula cidaris (Kent, 1882) (T.S., Fig. 19,
M), A. crenata (Fraipont, 1877), A. diadema (Collin, 1912), A. homari (Sand, 1899), A. pleuromammae (Steuer, 1928).
3. Limnoricus Jankowski, 1981
= Deltacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Limnoricus ceter Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig. 20, A), L. seticolus (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Deltacineta seticola Jankowski, 1981.
4. Distarcon Jankowski, 1987
Distarcon emeritae (Small et Lynn, 1985) (T.S., Fig.
20, B).
5. Loricophrya Matthes, 1956
Loricophrya parva (Schulz, 1932) (T.S., Fig. 20, E), L. sacculus (Penard, 1914) comb. n. for Solenophrya sacculus Penard, 1914, L. bifaria (Stokes, 1887), L. caepula (Penard, 1920), L. lauterborni (Sondheim, 1929), L. multitentaculata (Sand, 1895), L. oviformis (Dons, 1918), L. sivertseni (Allgen, 1951), L. soleno-phryaformis (Sand, 1899).
6. Luxophrya Jankowski, 1978
Luxophrya limbata (Maupas, 1881) (T.S., Fig. 20, D), L. maupasi(Butschli, 1889) comb. n. for Podophrya maupasi Butschli, 1889.
7. Nipponarcon Jankowski, 1981 Nipponarcon setarius Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig.
20, C).
Family Praethecacinetidae Dovgal, 1996
Suctorian ciliates with a pyriform or sac-like stalked body attached to the bottom of the lorica. Capitate tentacles are arranged in a single apical fascicle. Reproduction by exogemmy with formation of laterally positioned elongated ciliary protomit.
Habitat. Commensals of marine invertebrates.
1. Praethecacineta Mathes, 1956 Praethecacineta halacari (Schulz, 1933) (T.S., Fig. 20, F).
Family Manuelophryidae Dovgal, fam. n.
With the above diagnosis.
1. Manuelophrya Matthes, 1988 Manuelophrya hannae (Guhl, 1985) (T.S., Fig.
20, I).
2. Pseudogemmides Kormos, 1935 Pseudogemmides globosa Kormos, 1935 (T.S., Fig.
20, H and Fig. 7, Db).
3. Mistarnon Jankowski, 1986
Mistarcon parasiticus (Nozawa,1939) (T.S., Fig.
20, G).
Order Tachyblastonida Jankowski, 1978
Parasitic suctorians with two alternate generations. One generation, loricate and attached to host, produces several (up to 16) bottle-like unciliary swarmers which pierce the pellicle of another host (ciliate). The other generation lives parasitically in the host’s cytoplasm and produces large ciliated swarmers, which become loricate after adhesion. Both types of protomits are laterally positioned. Reproduction by sequential semi-circumvaginative budding.
Family Tachyblastonidae Grell, 1970
With characteristics of the order.
Habitat. The loricate generation lives on various marine hydrobionts, whereas the trophont stage lives within the cytoplasm of suctorians (Ephelota sp.).
1. Tachyblaston Martin, 1909
Tachyblaston ephelotensis Martin, 1909 (T.S., Fig.
20, J).
Order Ephelotida Raabe, 1964
= Ophryocephalida Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Marine suctorians with large truncate-spherical adults that possess both regular sucking tentacles and additional prehensile tentacle-like organelles. The latter may be absent in parasitic forms. The stalk (rarely lorica) usually present. The macronucleus is usually ramified (crown-like). Reproduction is by synchronous polyexogemmy. Swarmers are ellipsoidal and flattened, with horseshoe-shaped main ciliary field.
Family Ephelotidae Kent, 1882
= Ophryocephalidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Tunicophryidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
With characteristics of the order.
Habitat. Commensals of various marine invertebrates or fouling organisms.
1. Ephelota Wright, 1859
= Sargassephelota Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Discephelota Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Ephelota gemmipara (Hertwig, 1875) (T.S., Fig. 21, A), E. butschliana Ishikawa, 1896, E. coronata Kent, 1881, E. cothurnata Dons, 1915, E. crustaceorum (Haller, 1880), E. dalyelli Holt, 1891, E. gigantea Noble, 1929, E. lacazei (Gourret et Roeser, 1887), E. mammilata Dons, 1915, E. microsoma (Maupas, 1881), E. minima Noble, 1929, E. neglecta Sand, 1899, E. plana Wailes, 1925, E. pusilla (Koch, 1876), E. suzakiensis Yagiu, 1980, E. thouleti (Maupas, 1881), E. truncata (Fraipont, 1878).
2. Metephelota Willis, 1945
Metephelota coronata Willis, 1945 (T.S., Fig. 21, C), M. excavata (Dons, 1938) comb. n.. for Podocyathus excavatus Dons, 1938.
3. Podocyathus Kent, 1881
Podocyathus diadema Kent, 1881 (T.S., Fig. 21, D), P. paguri Zhadan et Mikrjukov, 1996.
4. Shellephelota Jankowski, 1981
Shellephelota branchialis Jankowski, 1981 (T.S.,
Fig. 21, E).
Fig. 19. Type species of the podo-phryid, phalacrocleptid and metacine-tid suctorian genera. A — Parapodophrya soliformis (Lauterborn, 1901), from Kahl, 1931; B — Podophrya fixa (Muller, 1786), orig.; C — Sphaerophrya magna Maupas, 1881, orig.; D — Vanhovenia multisuctores (Van Hoven et al., 1998), from Van Hoven et al., 1998; E — Allantosoma intestinalis Gassowski, 1918, orig.; F — Arcosoma dicorniger (Hsiung, 1928), from Kudo, 1946; G
— Allantoxena biseriale (Strelkow, 1939), from Ike et al., 1983; H — Severonis spongiarum Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; I — Phalacrocleptes verruciformis Kozloff, 1966, from Jankowski, 1981; J — Metacineta mystacina (Ehrenberg, 1831), orig.; K
— Urnula epistylidis Claparede et Lachmann, 1861, orig.; L — Paracineta pa-tula (Claparede et Lachmann, 1861), budding, from Collin, 1912; M — Actinocyathula cidaris (Kent, 1882), from Kahl, 1934.
5. Thaumatophrya Collin, 1912 Thaumatophrya trold (Claparede et Lachmann,
1859) (T.S., Fig. 21, F).
6. Tunicophrya Jankowski, 1973
Tunicophrya sessilis (Collin, 1912) (T.S., Fig. 21, B).
7. Ophiurephelota Jankowski, 1981 Ophiurephelota tenax Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig.
21, H).
8. Ophryocephalus Wailes, 1925 Ophryocephalus capitatus Wailes, 1925 (T.S., Fig.
21, G).
Subclass Vermigenia Jankowski, 1978
Suctorians with vermigemmic budding producing large, vermiform unciliary swarmers.
Order Spelaeophryida Jankowski, 1978
= Dendrosomidida Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Vermigemmin suctorians with a bowl-like or stretched, rarely ramified body, usually with a stalk. Lorica is absent. Tentacles are capitate and positioned on the apical or lateral body surface, in fascicles or rows.
Family Spelaeophryidae Batisse, 1975
Freshwater and marine suctorians with cylindrical or conical body. Capitate tentacles are arranged in an apical corona or in groups along the body. There is a short stalk.
Habitat. Commensals of marine and freshwater crustaceans.
1. Spelaeophrya Stammer, 1935 Spelaeophrya polypoides (Daday, 1907) (T.S, Fig.
21, I).
2. Cucumophrya Kunz, 1936
Cucumophrya leptomesochrae Kunz, 1936 (T.S., Fig. 22, B).
Fig. 20. Type species of the metacinetid and tachyblastonid suctorian genera. A — Limnoricus ceter Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; B — Distarcon emeritae (Small et Lynn, 1985), from Small and Lynn, 1985; C — Nipponarcon setarius Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; D
— Luxophrya limbata (Maupas, 1881), budding, from Collin, 1912; E — Lori-cophrya parva (Schulz, 1932), from Curds, 1987; F — Praethecacineta halacari (Schulz, 1933), budding, from Matthes et al., 1988; G — Mistarcon parasiticus (Nozawa, 1939), orig.; H — Pseudogemmides globosa Kormos,
1935, budding, orig.; I — Manuelophrya hannae (Guhl, 1985), orig.; J — Tachyblaston ephelotensis Martin, 1909, life cycle, from Grell, 1950.
Family Lecanophryidae Jankowski, 1973
Suctorians with a cup-like or laterally flattened body. Tentacles are capitate with basal widenings, arranged in rows on the apical body surface or in fascicles on the actinophores. There is a stalk.
Habitat. Commensals of brackish-water and freshwater harpacticoid crustaceans.
1. Lecanophrya Kahl, 1934
Lecanophrya drosera Kahl, 1934 (T.S., Fig. 21, J), L. truncata (Collin, 1909), L. crassimarginata Kahl, 1934.
2. Lecanophryella Dovgal, 1985 Lecanophryella paraleptastaci Dovgal, 1985 (T.S.,
Fig. 21, K), L. satyanandani (Santhakumari, 1986).
Family Dendrosomididae Jankowski, 1981
Suctorians with a ramified body or well-developed actinophores. Capitate tentacles are arranged in fascicles or rows on the branches of the body. The macronucleus is ramified, ribbon-like or spherical.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of marine crustaceans.
1. Dendrosomides Collin, 1906
= Stylogemma Jankowski, 1981 syn. n. Dendrosomidespaguri Collin, 1906 (T.S., Fig. 21, L), D. grassei Batisse, 1986, D. wailesi (Kahl, 1934) comb. n. for Rhabdophrya wailesi Kahl, 1934.
2. Rondosomides Jankowski, 1981 Rondosomides lucicutiae (Bowman, 1977) (T.S.,
Fig. 22, A).
3. Asterifer Jankowski, 1967
Asterifer faurei (Guilcher, 1950) (T.S., Fig. 22, C).
4. Leboransia Dovgal gen. n.
Leboransia mysidacea (Fernandez-Leborans et al.,
1996) (T.S., Fig. 22, D) comb. n. for Ophryodendron mysidacii Fernandez-Leborans et al, 1996.
Family Dentacinetidae Batisse 1992
Stalked suctorians with unflattened body bearing characteristic longitudinal cortical ribs. Tentacles are clavate and agile, arranged in a single apical fascicle.
Fig. 21. Type species ofthe ephelotid and spelaeophryid suctorian genera. A — Ephelota gemmipara (Hertwig, 1875), from Collin, 1912; B — Tunicophrya sessilis (Collin, 1912), from Collin, 1912; C — Metephelota coronata Willis, 1945, from Willis, 1945; D - Podo-cyathus diadema Kent, 1881, from Kudo, 1946; E — Shellephelota bran-chialis Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; F — Thaumatophrya trold (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), from Kudo, 1946; G — Ophryocephalus capitatus Wailes, 1925, from Kudo, 1946; H — Ophiurephelota tenax Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; I — Spelaeophrya polypoides (Daday, 1907), budding, from Matthes et al., 1988; J — Lecanophrya drosera Kahl, 1934, from Kahl, 1934; K — Lecano-phryella paraleptastaci Dovgal, 1985, orig.; L — Dendrosomides paguri Collin,
1906, budding, from Collin, 1912.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of marine harpacticoid crustaceans.
1. Dentacineta Jankowski, 1978
= Dentacinetides Batisse, 1992 syn. n.
Dentacineta campanuliformis (Collin, 1909) (T.S., Fig. 22, E), D. collini (Batisse, 1992) comb. n. for Dentacinetides collini Batisse, 1992.
2. Pleurophryodendron Jankowski, 1978 Pleurophryodendron reversum (Collin, 1909) (T.S.,
Fig. 22, F).
Family Thecacinetidae Matthes, 1956
Suctorians with a sac-like, stalked, loricate body with apically grouped clavate tentacles. Reproduction by vermigemmy with formation of lateral, vermiform protomit.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of marine crustaceans, nematodes and algae.
1. Thecacineta Collin, 1909 = Lissacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Litacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Paradentacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n. Thecacineta calix (Schroder, 1901) (T.S., Fig. 22,
G), T. allgeni (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Lissacineta allgeni Jankowski, 1981, T. cattanei (Parona, 1883), T. contorta (Moebius, 1888), T. cothurnioides Collin, 1909, T. cypridinae Collin, 1912, T. desmodorae Schulz, 1931, T. donsi Allgen, 1935, T. edmondsoni King, 1932, T. gracilis Wailes, 1928, T. inclusa (Meunier, 1910), T. laophontis Jankowski, 1981, T. lasanicola (Maskell, 1887), T. longepetiolata Allgen, 1951, T. microsetellis Jankowski, 1981, T. oblonga Allgen, 1955, T. oregonensis Murphy, 1963, T. paradesmodorae Allgen, 1950, T. simplex (Maskell,
1886), T. speciosa Maskell, 1886, T. spirinae Allgen, 1934, T. subantarctica Allgen, 1950, T. tulipa (Maskell,
1887).
Order Ophryodendrida Jankowski, 1975
= Stylostomatina Jankowski, 1978 syn n.
= Asteriferina Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Ophryodendrina Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Nemertodendrina Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Marine suctorians with a sac-like, unflattened or laterally flattened body. The key characteristic of the order is the presence of the rod-like (rarely ramified) tentacles positioned on the actinophores or the body surface. There are loricate and unloricate forms attaching to the substrate by the stalk or the surface of the body.
Family Ophryodendridae Stein, 1867
= Crevicometidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Stylostomatidae Batisse, 1975 syn. n.
= Corethriidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Loricodendridae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Nemertodendridae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Suctorians with rod-like or ramified tentacles positioned on one or more extensible proboscis-like actinophores or (rarely) also on the body. There are loricate, unloricate, stalked and unstalked species.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of marine invertebrates, mostly crustaceans.
1. Ophryodendron Claparede et Lachmann, 1859
= Stylostoma Milne, 1886 syn. n.
= Thisarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Elitarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Nemertodendron Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Stylophryodendron Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Setarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Isopodarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Syllarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Ophryodendron abietinum Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 (T.S., Fig. 22, H), O. annulatorum Saint Joseph, 1886, O. belgicumFraipont, 1878, O. conicum Schroder,
1907, O. draconematis (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Syllarcon draconematis Jankowski, 1981, O. forrestii (Milne, 1886) comb. n. for Stylostoma forrestii Milne, 1886, O. harmothois (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Elitarcon harmothois Jankowski, 1981, O. macquariae Johnston, 1938, O. multicapitatum Kent, 1881, O. pedicellatum Hincks, 1873, O. pedunculatum (Koch, 1876), O. prenanti Duboscq, 1925, O. rosscoffensis Batisse et Drajesco, 1967, O. stellarum Wailes, 1925,
O. trinacrium Gruber, 1884, O. ushakovi Jankowski et Awerinczew, 1972.
2. Corethria Wright, 1861
= Vinarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Corethria sertulariae (Wright, 1858) (T.S., Fig. 22, I), C. porcellanum (Kent, 1881), C. halacaridis (Dons, 1942), C. asteris (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Vinarcon asteris Jankowski, 1981.
3. Shyzactinia Jankowski, 1981
Shyzactinia multiramosa (Wenzel, 1953) (T.S., Fig. 23, A).
4. Spongiarcon Jankowski, 1980 Spongiarcon variabilis (Gruber, 1884) (T.S., Fig.
23, B).
5. Loricodendron Jankowski, 1973 Loricodendron hollandei (Batisse, 1969) (T.S., Fig.
23, C).
6. Crevicometes Jankowski, 1981 Crevicometes murmanicus Jankowski, 1981 (T.S.,
Fig. 23, E).
Family Rhabdophryidae Jankowski, 1978
Vermigemmin suctorians with unloricate, stalked, laterally flattened, ribbon-like or sac-like body. Rodlike tentacles are evenly distributed or placed on non-contractile actinophores of various shape.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of marine crustaceans.
1. Rhabdophrya Chatton et Collin, 1910 = Stylarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Rhabdophrya trimorpha Chatton et Collin, 1910
(T.S., Fig. 23, D), R nymphonis (Gassovsky, 1916), R populiformis (Gassovsky, 1916), R. truncata (Dons, 1915).
2. Hastarcon Jankowski, 1981
Hastarcon islandicus Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig.
23, F).
3. Spinarcon Jankowski, 1981
Spinarcon antennaris Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig.
23, G).
4. Trophogemma Jankowski, 1970 Trophogemma poljanskyi Jankowski, 1970 (T.S.,
Fig. 23, H).
5. Vostonica Jankowski, 1994
Vostonica tenax Jankowski, 1994 (T.S., Fig. 23, I).
Subclass Endogenia Collin, 1912
Suctorian ciliates with endogenous budding. Monogemmic or polygemmic swarmers are produced internally. They are usually small, with encircling bands of cilia.
Order Acinetida Raabe, 1964
= Acinetina Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Tokophryina Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Fig. 22. Type species of the spe-laeophryid and ophryodendrid suc-torian genera. A — Rondosomides lucicutiae (Bowman, 1977), from Bowman, 1977; B — Cucumophrya leptomesochrae Kunz, 1936, from Kunz, 1936; C — Asterifer faurei (Guilcher, 1950), from Guilcher, 1950b; D — Leboransia mysidacea (Fernanez-Leborans et al., 1996), from Fernadez-Leborans et al., 1996; E — Dentacineta campanu-liformis (Collin, 1912), from Collin, 1912; F — Pleurophryodendron rever-sum (Collin, 1909), budding, from Collin, 1912; G — Thecacineta calix (Schroder, 1901), from Matthes, 1956; H — Ophryodendron abietinum Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, from Claparede and Lachmann, 1859; I
— Corethria sertulariae (Wright, 1858), budding, from Collin, 1912.
Suctorians with loricate and unloricate stalked adults. Capitate tentacles in several fascicles or rows. The body usually flattened laterally.
Family Acinetidae Ehrenberg, 1838
= Cryptophryidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Suctorians with a laterally flattened, trapeziumlike, triangular or (rarely) disc-like body. Tentacles are arranged in two, rarely three fascicles or rows. As a rule actinophores are present. The macronucleus is ovoid or ribbon-like, never ramified. The presence of the stalk and all types of the lorica is characteristic of the family. Swarmers ovoid with longitudinal kineties.
Habitat. Commensals of marine and freshwater invertebrates and plants, as well as periphytic forms.
1. Acineta Ehrenberg, 18345 = Plicophrya Jankowski, 1975 syn. n.,
= Crossacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Thalassacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Acineta tuberosa Ehrenberg, 1834 (T.S., Fig. 23, L), A. annulata Wang et Nie Da Shu, 1932, A. baikalica (Swarczewsky, 1929), A. benesaepta Schulz, 1934, A. branchicola Precht, 1935, A. brevicaulis Rieder, 1936,
5 In Zoological Record (1995, V. 131, P. 827 six new species from genus Acineta published by E. Dumas (1937) are given: A. biligula Dumas, 1937; A. caliculata Dumas, 1937; A. elaverina Dumas, 1937; A. mystacina Dumas, 1937; A. semiorbis Dumas, 1937 and A. tubicola Dumas, 1937. Unfortunately, Dumas’ work is not available to us. Therefore the species mentioned were omitted from the list.
A. brevistyla (Swarczewsky, 1929), A. calkinsi Curds, 1985, A. calyx Daday, 1907, A. cattanei Parona, 1883, A. collini Kahl, 1934, A. commensalis (Swarczewsky, 1929), A. compressa Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, A. contorta Gourret et Roesel, 1886, A. corophii Collin, 1912, A. corrugata Stokes, 1894, A. cothurnata Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, A. crassipes Fric et Vavra, 1894, A. crater (Gajewskaja, 1933), A. crusta-ceorum Sand, 1899, A. dentata (Swarczewsky, 1929), A. emaciata Maupas, 1881, A. euchaetae Sewell, 1951, A. flava Stokes, A. flexilis Stokes, 1894, A. fluviatilis Stokes, 1885, A. foetida Maupas, 1881, A. gammari (Penard, 1920), A. gelatinosa Buck, 1884, A. grahami Allgen, 1955, A. grandis Kent, 1882, A. harpacticola Precht, 1935, A. karamani Hadzi, 1940, A. laomedeae Precht, 1935, A. lappacea Stokes, 1885, A. lasanicola Maskell, 1887, A. limnetis Goodrich et Jachn, 1943, A. maxima Rieder, 1936, A. minuta Wailes, 1928, A. nieuportensis Sand, 1899, A. nitocrae Dovgal, 1984, A. oceanica Jankowski, 1981, A. oequalis Stokes, 1891, A. operculariae Engelmann, 1862, A. ornata Sand, 1899, A. ovoidea Allgen, 1951, A. pachystylos (Holm, 1925), A. parroceli Gourret et Roesel, 1886, A. poculum Hertwig, 1875, A. pulchra Kahl, 1934, A. puteana Moniez, 1889, A. pyriformis (Stokes, 1891), A. schulzi Kahl, 1934, A. simplex Maskell, 1886, A. socialis Kent, 1869, A. speciosa Maskell, 1887, A. sulcata Dons, 1927, A. symbiotica Daday, 1907, A. talitris Jankowski, 1981, A. tubulifera (Swarczewsky, 1929), A. variabilisNozawa, 1938, A. zoothamnii Hertwig, 1875.
2. Trematosoma Batisse, 1972
= Conchacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Sparsacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Rimacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Trematosoma boqueti (Guilcher, 1950) (T.S., Fig.
23, K), T. amphiasci(Precht, 1935), T.pusilla(Maupas, 1881) comb. n. for Acineta pusilla Maupas, 1881, T. complatana (Gruber, 1884) comb. n. for Acineta complatana Gruber, 1884, T. constricta (Collin, 1909) comb. n. for Acineta constricta Collin, 1909, T. falcata (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Rimacineta falcata Jankowski, 1981, T. rotunda (Allgen, 1952) comb. n. for Acineta rotunda Allgen, 1952.
3. Acinetides Swarczewsky, 1929
Acinetides varians Swarczewsky, 1929 (T.S., Fig. 23, J), A. gruberiCurds, 1985, A. labiata (Rieder, 1936), A. triangularis (Penard, 1920).
4. Soracineta Jankowski, 1978
Soracineta dibdalteria (Parona, 1881) (T.S, Fig. 24,
A), S. orchestii Dovgal, 1999.
5. Anthacineta Jankowski, 1978
= Noracineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Semiacineta Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Anthacineta craterellus (Collin, 1909) (T.S., Fig. 24,
B), A. infundibuliformis (Wang et Nie, 1933) comb. n. for Acineta infundibuliformis Wang et Nie, 1933, Anthacineta swarczewskyi (Collin, 1911) comb. n. for Acineta swarczewskyi Collin, 1911.
6. Cryptacineta Jankowski, 1978 Cryptacineta operta (Swarczewsky, 1929) (T.S., Fig.
24, C).
7. Cryptophrya Jankowski, 1973
Cryptophrya obtecta (Swarczewsky, 1929) (T.S., Fig.
24, E).
8. Squalorophrya Goodrich et Jahn, 1943 Squalorophrya macrostyla Goodrich et Jahn, 1943
(T.S., Fig. 27, G), S. stenostyla Hamilton et Jahn, 1947.
9. Phyllacineta Jankowski, 1978 Phyllacinetajolyi (Maupas, 1881) (T.S., Fig. 24, D),
P. tripharetrata (Entz, 1902).
10. Rondacineta Jankowski, 1978 Rondacineta muscicola (Penard, 1914) (T.S., Fig.
24, F), R. stellata (Kent, 1881) comb. n. for Acineta stellata Kent, 1881.
11. Slitarcon Jankowski, 1986
Slitarcon laevis (Dons, 1918) (T.S., Fig. 24, G).
12. Vasacineta Jankowski, 1981
Vasacineta cuspidata (Kellicott, 1885) (T.S., Fig.
24, H).
13. Veracineta Jankowki, 1978
Veracineta tisbei(Guilcher, 1950) (T.S., Fig. 24, J), V. pyriformis (Stokes, 1891).
Family Acinetopsidae Jankowski, 1978
Acinetids with differentiation of tentacles into hypertrophic, agile prehensile and regular sucking ones. The body is trapezium-like, laterally flattened, loricate and stalked. The macronucleus is spherical or ovoid.
Habitat. Commensals of marine and freshwater invertebrates and plants.
1. Acinetopsis Robin, 1879 Acinetopsis rara Robin, 1879 (T.S., Fig. 24, I), A. elegans Swarczewsky, 1929, A. tentaculata Root, 1922.
Family Tokophryidae Jankowski, 1978
Acinetid suctorians lacking lorica. The body ovoid, triangular or cylindrical, often flattened laterally. The macronucleus is spherical or ribbon-like. Capitate tentacles are arranged in two or (rarely) more fascicles. Adhesion to substrate by stalk of different length.
Habitat. Commensals of marine and freshwater invertebrates and plants, as well as periphytic forms.
1. Tokophrya Butschli, 1889 = Trinacineta Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Armiacineta Jankowski, 1982 syn. n.
= Sibiracineta Jankowski, 1982 syn. n.
Fig. 23. Type species of the ophryo-dendrid and acinetid suctorian genera. A — Shyzactinia multiramosa (Wenzel, 1953), budding, from Wenzel, 1961; B
— Spongiarcon variabilis (Gruber, 1884), from Jankowski, 1981; C — Lorico-dendron hollandei (Batisse, 1969), from Batisse, 1969; D — Rhabdophrya trimo-rpha Chatton et Collin, 1910, from Collin, 1912; E — Crevicometes mur-manicus Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; F — Hastarcon islandicus Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981; G — Spinarcon antennaris Jankowski, 1981, from Jankowski, 1981) H — Trop-hogemma poljanskyi Jankowski, 1970, from Jankowski, 1970; I — Vostonica tenax Jankowski, 1994, from Jankowski, 1994; J — Acinetides varians Swarczewsky, 1929, from Swarczewsky, 1929; K — Trematosoma boqueti (Guilcher, 1950), from Batisse, 1972; L — Acineta tuberosa Ehrenberg, 1834, orig.
= Tokophryona Jankowski, 1982 syn. n.
= Basitokophrya Jankowski, 1982 syn. n.
Tokophrya quadripartita (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) (T.S., Fig. 25, A), T. actinostyla Collin, 1912, T. beetoni Small et Lynn, 1985, T. bengalensis Ghosh, 1929, T. biloba (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. carchesii (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), T. cordiformis (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. cornuta (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. crypturopi (Swarczewky, 1929), T. cyclopum (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), T. diaptomi (Kelli-cott, 1885), T. emarginata Swarczewsky, 1929, T. endemica (Jankowski, 1982) comb. n. for Sibiracineta endemica Jankowski, 1982, T. fasciculata (Lopes-Ochoterena, 1964), T. foecunda (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. globovata (Bovee, 1981) comb. n. for Testudinicola globovata Bovee, 1981, T. glomerata Penard, 1920, T. gracilipes Penard, 1920, T. grisca Gajewskaja, 1933,
T. infusionum (Stein, 1859), T. lemnarum (Stein, 1859), T. lobata (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. longicollis Penard, 1920, T. manueli Matthes et Rebhan, 1983, T. microcerberi Delamare et Chappuis, 1956, T. mollis (Kent, 1882), T. multifasciculata Kormos, 1938, T. niphargi (Strouhal, 1939), T. okobojiensis (Goodich et Jahn, 1943), T. ornata Gajewskaja, 1933, T. ovalis (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. parva (Swarczewky, 1929), T. patagonica (Collin, 1912), T. pelagica (Jankowski,
1982) comb. n. for Tokophryona pelagica Jankowski, 1982, T. phreaticum Ueno, 1962, T. pulchra (Swarczewky, 1929), T. pumila (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. pusilla (Swarczewky, 1929), T. pyrum (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), T. radiata Gajewskaja, 1933, T. seticola (Jankowski, 1982) comb. n. for Armiacineta seticola Jankowski, 1982, T. sphaerifera (Swarczewky, 1929), T. steueri Schroder, 1911, T. tritoni Guilcher,
1951, T. trold (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), T. vulgata (Swarczewsky, 1929), T. wenzeli Matthes et Stiebler, 1970, T. yastrebtsovi Dovgal, 1993.
2. Lecanodiscus Jankowski, 1973 Lecanodiscus longus (Swarczewsky, 1928) (T.S., Fig.
25, C), L. cyathos (Swarczewsky, 1928), L. robustus (Swarczewsky, 1928).
3. Listarcon Jankowski, 1982
Listarcon angarensis Jankowski, 1982 (T.S., Fig.
25, D).
4. Parastylophrya Jankowski, 1978 Parastylophrya tumida (Gajewskaja, 1933) (T.S.,
Fig. 27, B).
5. Muscophrya Jankowski, 1978
Muscophrya lycoperdon (Penard, 1920) (T.S., Fig.
25, E).
6. Pelagacineta Jankowski, 1978
= Pseudocorynophrya Small et Lynn, 1985 syn. n. Pelagacineta interrupta (Schroder, 1901) (T.S., Fig.
25, F), P. campanula (Schroder, 1901), P. multi-tentaculata (Small et Lynn, 1985) comb. n. for Pseudocorynophrya multitentaculata Small et Lynn, 1985.
7. Tokophryopsis Swarczewsky, 1929 Tokophryopsis gigantea Swarczewsky, 1929 (T.S.,
Fig. 25, B).
8. Talizona Jankowski, 1981
Talizona flexilis (Kellicott, 1887) (T.S., Fig. 25, I).
Family Corynophryidae Jankowski, 1981
Suctorians with a massive spherical or cylindrical body and a well-developed stalk. Tentacles are regular capitate. They are agile, contractile and may be arranged in single apical fascicle or evenly distributed. The macronucleus is ribbon-like or ovoid.
Habitat. Commensals of marine invertebrates and algae.
1. Corynophrya Kahl, 1934
Corynophrya lyngbyei(Ehrenberg, 1834) (T.S., Fig.
25, G), C. columbiae (Wailes, 1943), C. conipes (Mereschkowsky, 1877), C. francottei (Sand, 1895), C. macropus (Meunier, 1910), C. symbiotica Jankowski,
1981.
2. Andrusovia gen. n.
Andrusovia marina (Andrusova, 1886) (T.S., Fig.
25, H) comb. n. for Podophrya marina Andrusova, 1886.
Family Choanophryidae Dovgal, fam. n.
With the above diagnosis.
1. Choanophrya Hartog, 1901 Choanophrya infundibulifera (Hartog, 1881) (T.S., Fig. 25, L), C. subsessilis Penard, 1920.
Family Dactylostomatidae Jankowski, 1978
Suctorian ciliates with bottle-like tentacles, arranged in two apical rows. The body sac-like, unflattened. The stalk is massive with apical widening (physon).
Habitat. Commensals of freshwater crustaceans from lake Baikal.
1. Dactylostoma Jankowski, 1967
Dactylostoma collini (Gajewskaja, 1929) (T.S., Fig.
26, A).
Order Trichophryida Jankowski, 1978
= Marinectida Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Pseudogemmida Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Dendrosomatida Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Dendrosomatina Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Stylophryina Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Suctorians with a flattened stalkless body, with fascicles of capitate or rod-like tentacles on actino-phores. The macronucleus is ovoid, ribbon-like or ramified. There are loricate forms, mainly with mucous lorica. Attachment to the substrate by the basal body surface, body protuberances or (in parasites) by tentacles.
Family Trichophryidae Butschli, 1879
= Marinectidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Staurophryidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Mucophryidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Actinobranchiidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Caprinianidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
= Peltacinetidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Freshwater or marine suctorians attaching to the substrate by the basal surface of the body, its protuberances or specialized tentacles. The body unramified and unloricate or covered by mucous lorica. Tentacles are capitate or rod-like, arranged in fascicles or rows rarely on poorly developed actinophores.
Habitat. Commensals or parasites of water invertebrates and vertebrates as well as plankters.
1. Trichophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 6
6 In Zoological Record (1995, V. 131, P. 827) four new species from genus Trichophrya are given with reference to E. Dumas’ (1937) work: T. fixa Dumas, 1937; T. limax Dumas, 1937; T. pistillaris Dumas; 1937 and T. viridis Dumas, 1937. As noted above, Dumas’ work (1937) is not available to us. Therefore the species mentioned were omitted from the list.
Fig. 24. Type species of the acinetid suctorian genera. A — Soracineta dibdalteria (Parona,
1881), from Curds, 1985a; B — Anthacineta craterellus (Collin, 1909), from Collin, 1912; C — Cryptacineta operta (Swarczew-sky, 1929), from Swarczewsky, 1929; D — Phyllacineta jolyi (Maupas, 1881), from Jankowski, 1981; E — Cryptophrya ob-tecta (Swarczewsky, 1929), from Swarczewsky, 1929; F — Ronda-cineta muscicola (Penard, 1914), from Penard, 1914; G — Slitarcon laevis (Dons, 1918), from Kahl, 1934; H — Vasacineta cuspidata (Kellicott, 1885), from Kudo, 1946; I — Acinetopsis rara Robin, 1879, budding, from Kudo, 1946; J — Veracineta tisbei (Guilcher,
1950), from Guilcher, 1950b.
= Gajewskajophrya Matthes, 1988 syn. n.
= Actinobranchium Jankowski, 1967 syn. n.
Trichophrya epistylidis Claparede et Lachmann, 1859 (T.S., Fig. 26, B), T. angulata Dangeard, 1890, T. brevis (Goodrich et Jahn, 1943), T. cambari Small et Lynn, 1985, T. mirabilis Sand, 1899, T. myriophylli Penard, 1920, T. odontophora Sand, 1899, T. ophrydii Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, T. pirosomae Tregou-boff, 1916, T. salparum Entz, 1884, T. simplex (Zacharias, 1893), T. sinuosa Stokes, 1886, T. melosirae (Gajewskaja, 1933) comb. n. for Sphaerophrya melosirae Gajewskaja, 1933.
2. Brachyosoma Batisse, 1975
Brachyosoma brachypoda (Stokes, 1885) (T.S, Fig.
26, C), B. melo (Penard, 1920), B. bathynellae (Chappuis, 1944), B. oviformis (Sand, 1899).
3. Capriniana Strand, 1928
Caprinianapiscium (Butschli, 1889) (T.S., Fig. 26,
D), C. variformis (Li, 1985) comb. n. for Trichophrya variformis Li, 1985, C. bivacuola (Li, 1993) comb. n. for Trichophrya bivacuola Li, 1993.
4. Staurophrya Zacharias, 1893 Staurophrya elegans Zacharias, 1893 (T.S., Fig.
26, E).
5. Tetraedrophrya Zykoff, 1902 Tetraedrophrya planktonica Zykoff, 1902 (T.S., Fig.
26, F).
6. Mucophrya Gajewskaya, 1928
Mucophrya pelagica Gajewskaya, 1928 (T.S., Fig.
26, M).
7. Marinecta Jankowski, 1973
Marinecta pelagica (Daday, 1888) (T.S., Fig. 26, G), M. columbiae (Wailes, 1932), M. danae (Grontved,
1951), M. massiliensis (Gourret et Roeser, 1886).
Fig. 25. Type species of the acinetid and trichophryid suctorian genera. A
— Tokophrya quadripartita (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), orig.; B — Tokophryopsis gigantea Swarczewsky, 1929, from Swarczewsky, 1929; C — Lecanodiscus longus (Swarczewsky, 1928), from Swarczewsky, 1928c; D
— Listarcon angarensis Jankowski,
1982, from Jankowski, 1982; E — Muscophrya lycoperdon (Penard, 1920), from Curds, 1985c; F — Pelagacineta interrupta (Schroder, 1901), from Kahl, 1934; G — Corynophrya lyngbyei (Ehrenberg, 1834), from Kahl, 1934; H — Andrusovia marina (Andrusova, 1886), from Kahl, 1934; I — Talizona flexilis (Kellicott, 1887), from Curds, 1985c; J — Rhyncheta cyclopum Zenker, 1886, from Kudo, 1946; K — Riftus pygmaeus (Swar-czewsky, 1928), budding, from Jankowski, 1981; L — Choanophrya infundibulifera (Hartog, 1881), from Kudo, 1946; M — Peltacineta cordi-formis (Schewiakoff, 1893), from Schewiakoff, 1893.
8. Anarma Goodrich et Jahn, 1943
Anarma multiruga Goodrich et Jahn, 1943 (T.S., Fig.
26, H) (= Testudinicola goodrichi Bovee, 1981, syn. n.).
9. Rhizobranchium Jankowski, 1981 Rhizobranchium morchellii (Tregouboff, 1916)
(T.S., Fig. 26, I), R. cionis Jankowski, 1981.
10. Peltacineta Jankowski, 1981
Peltacineta cordiformis (Schewiakoff, 1893) (T.S., Fig. 25, M).
Family Rhynchetidae Jankowski, 1978 = Riftidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Suctorians parasitizing on freshwater crustaceans, attaching to the substrate by the basal body surface or protuberance. The key character of the family is the presence of several flexible, agile tentacles.
Habitat. Parasites of freshwater crustaceans.
1. Rhyncheta Zenker, 1866
Rhyncheta cyclopum Zenker, 1866 (T.S., Fig. 25, J), R. gammari Eismond, 1890, R. obconica Hartog, 1901.
2. Riftus Jankowski, 1981
Riftus pygmaeus (Swarczewsky, 1928) (T.S., Fig.
25, K).
Family Dendrosomidae Butschli, 1889 = Stylophryidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Stalkless endogemmins with a ramified body. Tentacles are capitate, evenly distributed or arranged in fascicles on actinophores. Adhesion to the substrate by basal body surface or protuberance. The macronucleus is ramified or spherical.
Fig. 26. Type species of the trichophryid and acinetid sucto-rian genera. A — Dactylostoma collini (Gajewskaja, 1929), from Gajewskaja, 1929; B — Tricho-phrya epistylidis Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, from Kudo, 1946; C — Brachyosoma bra-chypoda (Stokes, 1885), from Curds, 1985c; D — Capriniana piscium (B^schli, 1889), orig.; E — Staurophrya elegans Zacharias, 1893, from Kudo, 1946; F
— Tetraedrophrya planktonica Zykoff, 1902, from Zykoff, 1902; G — Marinecta pelagica (Daday,
1888), from Kahl, 1934; H — Anarma multiruga Goodrich et Jahn, 1943, from Goodrich and Jahn, 1943; I — Rhizobranchium morchellii (Tregouboff, 1916), from Kahl, 1934; J — Dendro-soma radians Ehrenberg, 1838, orig.; K — Gorgonosoma arbus-cula Swarczewsky, 1928, from Swarczewsky, 1928a; L — Astro-phrya arenaria Awerinzew, 1904, from Kudo, 1946; M — Mucophrya pelagica Gajewskaja, 1928, from Gajewskaja, 1933.
Habitat. Freshwater or brackish-water periphytic and planktonic organisms as well as commensals of invertebrates.
1. Dendrosoma Ehrenberg, 1838
= Baikalophrya Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n.
= Baikalodendron Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n.,
= Lernaeophrya Perez, 1903 syn. n.
Dendrosoma radians Ehrenberg, 1838 (T.S., Fig. 26, J) (= Baikalophrya acanthogammari Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n., B. digitata Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n., B. lobata Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n., Baikalodendron augustatum Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n.), D. capitata (Perez, 1903) comb. n. for Lernaeophrya capitata Perez, 1903.
2. Gorgonosoma Swarczewsky, 1928
Gorgonosoma arbuscula Swarczewsky, 1928 (T.S.,
Fig. 26, K).
3. Astrophrya Awerintzew, 1904
Astrophrya arenaria Awerinzew, 1904 (T.S., Fig. 26, L).
4. Stylophrya Swarczewsky, 1928
Stylophrya polymorpha Swarczewsky, 1928 (T.S., Fig. 27, A), S. capitifera Swarczewsky, 1928.
Family Erastophryidae Jankowski, 1978
Trichophryins attaching to the substrate (peritrichous ciliates) by characteristic organelles (cinctum or hemicinctum). Capitate tentacles are evenly distributed on the body surface or arranged in fascicles on short actinophores. The macronucleus is ovoid or ribbon-like. Habitat. Hypercommensals of freshwater fishes.
1. Erastophrya Faure-Fremiet, 1944 Erastophrya chattoni Faure-Fremiet, 1944 (T.S.,
Fig. 27, D).
2. Chenophrya Dovgal gen. n.
Chenophrya wuchangensis (Chen, 1964) (T.S., Fig.
27, E) comb. n. for Erastophrya wuchangensis Chen, 1964.
Family Solenophryidae Jankowski, 1981
Stalkless, loricate suctorians attaching to the substrate by basal surface of the lorica. Tentacles are capitate, the macronucleus is ovoid.
Habitat. Freshwater or brackish-water periphytic and planktonic organisms.
1. Solenophrya Claparede et Lachmann, 18597 Solenophrya crassa Claparede et Lachmann, 1859
(T.S., Fig. 27, C), S. bulbacea Penard, 1920, S. butschli Sand, 1899, S. calyciformis Penard, 1920, S. dubia Penard, 1920, S. flavescens Penard, 1914, S. inclusa (Stokes, 1885), S. massula Penard, 1914, S. odontophora Stokes, 1887, S. pera (Stokes, 1885).
2. Sphaeracineta Jankowski, 1987 Sphaeracineta estuarina (Jones, 1973) (T.S., Fig.
27, F).
Family Pseudogemmidae Jankowski, 1978
Loricate suctorians with a single rod-like tentacle or several ones. Tentacles serve for both feeding and adhesion. The macronucleus is spherical or ellipsoid.
Habitat. Ectoparasites of freshwater or marine ciliates (suctorians and folliculins).
1. Pseudogemma Collin, 1912 Pseudogemma pachystyla Collin, 1912 (T.S., Fig.
27, H), P. fraiponti Collin, 1909, P. keppeni Collin, 1912, P. metacinetarum Nozawa, 1938.
2. Pottsiocles Corliss, 1960
Pottsiocles infusoriorum (Chatton et Lwoff, 1927) (T.S., Fig. 27, J).
Order Endosphaeriida Jankowski, 1978
Small ovoid forms with neither a stalk nor tentacles. Budding monogemmic or polygemmic. Spherical or ellipsoid swarmers with several transversal kineties and perforatorium are characteristic of the order.
Family Endosphaeriidae Jankowski, 1978
With characteristics of the order.
Habitat. Freshwater and marine intracellular or tissue parasites of ciliates, turbellarians and bivalve molluscs.
1. Endosphaera Engelmann, 1876 Endosphaera engelmanni Entz, 1896 (T.S., Fig. 27,
K), E. elisabetharum Guhl, 1985, E. terebrans Matthes et Guhl, 1973.
2. Parendosphaera Jankowski, 1981
7 In Zoological Record (1995, V. 131, P. 827) the new species Solenophrya crumilla Dumas, 1937 is given. As noted above, Dumas’ work (1937) work is not available to us. Therefore the species mentioned were omitted from the list.
Parendosphaera multifilis (Gonnert, 1935) (T.S., Fig. 27, I).
3. Acoelophtirius Jankowski, 1981
Acoelophthirius acronifer Jankowski, 1981 (T.S., Fig. 27, L), A. doerjesi Jankowski, 1981.
Subclass Evaginogenia Jankowski, 1978
Suctorians with evaginative budding (inver-sogemmy).
Order Discophryida Jankowski, 1975
= Discophryina Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Heliophryida Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Predominantly stalked forms or forms attaching to the substrate by an adhesive structure (disc) which is a modified stalk. Several forms are attached by protuberance of body or stylotheca. The body is disc-like, rarely spheroid or cylindrical in shape. There are both forms lifted over the substrate and spread forms. Tentacles are capitate. As a rule, actinophores are absent. Polymerisation of contractile vacuoles (up to several tens) is also characteristic of the representatives of the order.
Family Discophryidae Collin, 1912
= Coronodiscophryidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Cyathodiscophryidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Multifasciculatidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Unloricate, stalked suctorians with a flattened disclike, rarely sac-like body. Tentacles are capitate, arranged in fascicles or distributed along the body. The macronucleus is ovoid, ribbon-like or ramified.
Habitat. Mainly ectocommensals of imago of water insects and adults of crustaceans, also freshwater periphytonic forms.
1 Discophrya Lachmann, 1859
= Venodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Ferodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Coronodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn.n.
= Epidiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Paradiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Cyathodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Discophrya ferrumequinum (Ehrenberg, 1840) (T.S., Fig. 28, B), D. astaci(Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), D. brachystyla Kormos, 1938, D. coperniciana Wietrzy-kowski, 1914, D. cothurnata (Weisse, 1848), D. cyathostyla Matthes, 1954, D. cylindrica (Perty, 1852), D. diademiformis (Pritchard, 1861) comb. n. for Acineta diademiformis Pritchard, 1861, D. elegans (Goodrich
Fig. 27. Type species of the tricho-phryid, endosphaeriid and acinetid suctorian genera. A — Stylophrya polymorpha Swarczewsky, 1928, from Swarczewsky, 1928a; B — Parasty-lophrya tumida (Gajewskaja, 1933), from Gajewskaja, 1933; C — Soleno-phrya crassa Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, from Claparede and Lachmann, 1859; D — Erastophrya chattoni Faure-Fremiet, 1944, budding specimen on the peritrichous host, from Curds, 1985c; E — Chenophrya wuchangensis (Chen, 1964), from Matthes et al., 1988; F — Sphaeracineta estuarina (Jones, 1973), budding, from Jones, 1973; G — Squalorophrya macrostyla Goodrich et Jahn, 1943, from Goodrich and Jahn, 1943; H — Pseudogemma pachystyla Collin, 1912, budding, from Collin, 1912; I — Parendosphaera multifilis (Gonnert, 1935), budding, from Gonnert, 1935; J — Pottsiocles infusoriorum (Chatton et Lwoff, 1927), budding trophont and swarmer, from Kahl, 1934; K — Endosphaera engel-manni Entz, 1896, six specimens within the host cell, orig. and swarmer, from Kudo, 1946; L — Acoelophthirius doer-jesi Jankowski, 1981, from Dorjes,
1979.
et Jahn, 1943), D. elongata (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), D. gessneri Matthes, 1954, D. grassa Gajevskaja, 1932, D. helmidis Matthes, 1954, D. helophori Matthes et Plachter, 1975, D. hydrochi Matthes, 1953, D. inclinata (Kellicott, 1887), D. kormosi Matthes, 1954, D. laccobii Matthes, 1954, D. lata Rieder, 1936, D. lemnarum (Mereschkowsky, 1878) comb. n. for Podophrya lemnarum Mereschkowsky, 1878, D. lichtensteinii (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), D. minuta Nozawa, 1938, D. ochthebii Matthes, 1954, D. prismatica Holm, 1925, D. scyphostyla (Collin, 1912), D. spatulata Rieder, 1936, D. tumida Gajevskaja, 1933,
D. wrzesniowskii (Kent, 1882).
2. Setodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981
= Mesodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Setodiscophrya hydroi (Matthes, 1954) (T.S., Fig.
28, C), S. erlangensis (Matthes, 1954), S. deplanata (Matthes, 1954), S. operculariae (Stein, 1859) comb.
n. for Podophrya operculariae Stein, 1859, S. setarcon (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Mesodiscophrya setarcon Jankowski, 1981, S. steinii (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) comb. n. for Podophrya steinii Claparede et Lachmann, 1859, S. robusta Nozawa, 1938 comb. n. for Discophrya robusta Nozawa, 1938.
3. Misacineta Jankowski, 1978
Misacineta cybistri (Collin, 1912) (T.S., Fig. 28, D), M. acilii (Collin, 1912).
Family Prodiscophryidae Jankowski, 1978
Discophryid suctorians with a stalked spheroid body. Capitate tentacles are evenly distributed over the body surface. The macronucleus is spherical. The key characteristic of the family is anisogamic conjugation involving ciliary microconjugant similar to the swarmer.
Habitat. Freshwater periphytonic forms.
Fig. 28. Type species of the disco-phryid suctorian genera. A — Pro-discophrya solaris (Stein, 1859), budding, from Guilcher, 1951; B — Discophrya ferrumequinum (Ehren-berg, 1840), orig.; C — Setodis-cophrya hydroi (Matthes, 1954), from Matthes, 1954e; D — Misa-cineta cybistri (Collin, 1912), tro-phont and swarmer, from Collin, 1912; E — Periacineta buckei (Kent,
1882), from Matthes, 1954e; F — Kormosia linguifera (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), from Collin, 1912; G — Elatodiscophrya stammeri (Matthes, 1954), from Matthes, 1974; H — Peridiscophrya japonica Nozawa, 1938, from Nozawa, 1938;
I — Rhynchophrya palpans Collin, 1909, from Collin, 1912; J - Helio-phrya rotunda (Hentshel, 1916), orig.; K — Cyclophrya magna Gon-nert, 1935, orig.
A)
1. Prodiscophrya Kormos, 1935 Prodiscophrya solaris (Stein, 1859) (T.S., Fig. 28, P. endogama J. Kormos et K. Kormos, 1956.
Family Periacinetidae Jankowski, 1978
= Caracatharinidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Catharinidae Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Discophryins with tectinous lorica or stylotheca, laterally flattened or (rarely) sac-like body and clavate tentacles arranged in fascicles. The macronucleus is ellipsoid, ribbon-like or ramified.
Habitat. Commensals of freshwater invertebrates and periphytonic forms.
1. Periacineta Collin, 1909
= Anisarcon Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Arcodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
= Tomodiscophrya Jankowski, 1981 syn. n.
Periacineta buckei (Kent, 1882) (T.S., Fig. 28, E),
P. gyrini Dovgal, 1993, P. heraldica (Jankowski, 1981) comb. n. for Arcodiscophrya heraldica Jankowski, 1981, P. hydrochi (Matthes, 1954) comb. n. for Discophrya hydrochi Matthes, 1954, P. koeppeli (Matthes, 1954), P. laccophili (Matthes, 1954), P. molesta (Matthes, 1954), P. notonectae (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), P. paratuberosa (Nie et Ho, 1943) comb. n. for Acineta paratuberosa Nie et Ho, 1943, P. periacinetoides (Nozawa, 1938), P. striata Dovgal, 1993, P. urceolata (Stokes, 1885).
2. Kormosia Dovgal gen. n.
Kormosia linguifera (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) (T.S., Fig. 28, F) comb. n. for Acineta linguifera Claparede et Lachmann, 1859.
3. Elatodiscophrya Jankowski, 1978
Elatodiscophrya stammeri (Matthes, 1954) (T.S.,
Fig. 28, G), E. hochi (Matthes, 1954).
4. Peridiscophrya Nozawa, 1938 (non Kormos, 1938)
= Catharina Kormos, 1957 syn. n.
= Caracatharina Kormos, 1968 syn. n. Peridiscophrya japonica Nozawa, 1938 (T.S., Fig.
28, H), P. florea (Kormos, 1957) comb. n. for Catharina florea Kormos, 1957, P. crassipes (Rieder, 1936) comb. n. for Paracineta crassipes Rieder, 1936.
Family Rhynchophryidae Jankowski, 1978
Stalked, unloricate suctorians with laterally flattened, elongated body and several contractile, agile tentacles. The macronucleus is ribbon-like.
Habitat. Ectoparasites of discophryin suctorians.
1. Rhynchophrya Collin, 1909
Rhynchophrya palpans Collin, 1909 (T.S., Fig. 28, I).
Family Heliophryidae Corliss, 1979
Evaginogemmins with discoid and often small body flattened on the substrate. There is no stalk or lorica but tectinous adhesive disc is present. Tentacles
Fig. 29. Type species of the tripa-nococcid, dendrocometid and cyathodiniid suctorian genera. A — Tripanococcus rotiferrorum Stein, 1867, from Matthes, 1971; B — Stylocometes digitatus (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859), orig.; C — Echi-nophrya horrida Swarczewsky, 1928, from Swarczewsky, 1928c; D — Discosomatella tenella (Swarczewsky, 1928), from Swarczewsky, 1928b; E — Dendrocometes paradoxus Stein, 1851, orig.; F — Nisco-metes peregrinus (Small et Lynn, 1985), budding, from Small and Lynn, 1985; G — Cometodendron erectum Swarczewsky, 1928, from Swarczewsky, 1928b; H — Cyatho-dinium conicum Cunha, 1914, from Kudo, 1946; I — Enchelyomorpha vermicularis (Smith, 1899), tro-phont and swarmer, from Foissner and Foissner, 1995.
are knobbed and extensible, solitary or arranged in several fascicles. The macronucleus is ovoid or ramified.
Habitat. Freshwater periphytonic forms and commensals of invertebrates.
1. Heliophrya De Saedeleer et Tellier, 1930 = Paraheliophrya Jankowski, 1978 syn. n. Heliophrya rotunda (Hentshel, 1916) (T.S., Fig. 28,
J), H. minima (Rieder, 1936), H. sinuosa (Rieder, 1936).
2. Cyclophrya Gonnert, 1935
Cyclophrya magna Gonnert, 1935 (T.S., Fig. 28, K), C. katharinae Kormos, 1960.
Order Tripanococcina Dovgal, ord. n.
With the above diagnosis.
Family Tripanococcidae Dovgal, fam. n.
With characteristics of the order.
1. Tripanococcus Stein, 1867
Tripanococcus rotiferrorum Stein, 1867 (T.S., Fig. 29, A).
Order Dendrocometida Raabe, 1964
Inversogemmins with a hemispherical, disc-like, vase-like or spindle-shaped body. The presence of ramified or rod-like tentacles is characteristic.
Suborder Stylocometina Jankowski, 1981
Stalked or stalkless suctorian ciliates with ovoid, sac-like or disc-like body. The rod-like, unramified tentacles are randomly distributed or arranged into rows.
Family Stylocometidae Jankowski, 1981
= Discosomatellidae Jankowski, 1978 syn. n.
Unstalked and stalked suctorians with ovoid, sac-like or disc-like body spread over the substrate. Tentacles are rod-like with a well-developed axonema, evenly distributed or arranged in rows.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of freshwater isopod and amphipod crustaceans.
1. Stylocometes Stein, 1876
Stylocometes digitatus (Claparede et Lachmann, 1859) (T.S., Fig. 29, B).
2. Discosomatella Corliss, 1960 Discosomatella tenella (Swarczewsky, 1928) (T.S.,
Fig. 29, D).
3. Echinophrya Swarczewsky, 1928 Echinophrya horrida Swarczewsky, 1928 (T.S., Fig.
29, C), E. stenaselli (Matjasic, 1963) comb. n. for Choanophrya stenaselli Matjasic, 1963.
Family Enchelyomorphidae Augustin et Foissner, 1992
Stalkless suctorians with spherical trophonts possessing rod-like tentacles randomly positioned on the one of the body sides. The macronucleus is spheroid. Invaginative budding with synchronous formation of two protomits is characteristic. The swarmer is spindleshaped with numerous transversal kineties and several rod-like tentacles at the posterior end. The mitochondria are lacking but hydrogenosomes and autophagous vacuoles are present.
Habitat. Anaerobic plankters, inhabitants of the activated sludge (Ettl, 2001) and soil (Foissner, 1998).
1. Enchelyomorpha Kahl, 1930 Enchelyomorpha vermicularis (Smith, 1899) (T.S., Fig. 29, I).
Suborder Dendrocometina Dovgal, subord. n.
With the above diagnosis.
Family Dendrocometidae Stein, 1851
Hemispherical or disc-like, spread forms with ramified tentacles. The macronucleus is spherical or ovoid.
Habitat. Ectocommensals of freshwater gammarid crustaceans.
1. Dendrocometes Stein, 1851
= Dendrocometides Swarczewsky, 1928 syn. n. Dendrocometes paradoxus Stein, 1851 (T.S., Fig. 29, E and Fig. 2), D. densus Swarczewsky, 1928, D. discoideus Swarczewsky, 1928, D. gigas Swarczewsky, 1928, D. gracilis Swarczewsky, 1928, D. robustrus Swarczewsky, 1928, D. priscus (Swarczewsky, 1928) comb. n. for Dendrocometides priscus Swarczewsky, 1928.
2. Niscometes Jankowski, 1987
Niscometesperegrinus (Small et Lynn, 1985) (T.S., Fig. 29, F).
Family Cometodendridae Jankowski, 1978
Suctorians with a vase-like branched body lifted over the substrate and ramified tentacles. The macronucleus is spherical. The body attaches to the substrate by its basal protuberance.
Habitat. Commensals of freshwater gammarid crustaceans attaching to the leg setae.
1. Cometodendron Swarczewsky, 1928 Cometodendron erectum Swarczewsky, 1928 (T.S., Fig. 29, G), C. brevimanum Swarczewsky, 1928, C. clavatum Swarczewsky, 1928, C. digitatum Swarczewsky, 1928, C. longimanum Swarczewsky, 1928, C. palmetta Swarczewsky, 1928, C. palmettoideum Swarczewky, 1928, C.pedunculatum Swarczewsky, 1928, C. raphanus Swarczewsky, 1928, C. rhabdophryoideum Swarczewsky, 1928, C. subtile Swarczewsky, 1928, C. spissum Swarczewsky, 1928,
Order Cyathodiniida Jankowski, 1975
Suctorians with a pyriform body, retaining ciliature at the trophont stage. Very short tentacles (endosprits) are arranged in rows. Budding with production of two ciliated protomits simultaneously.
Family Cyathodiniidae da Cunha, 1914
With characteristics of the order.
Habitat. Endocommensals of digestive tract of guinea pigs.
1. Cyathodinium da Cunha, 1914
Cyathodinium conicum Cunha, 1914 (T.S., Fig. 29,
H), C. breve Cunha et Freitas, 1940, C. chagasi Cunha et Freitas, 1936, C. cunhaiNie, 1950, C. indiae Bhaskar Rao, 1976, C. intermedius Cunha et Freitas, 1940, C. parvus Cunha et Freitas, 1940, C. pentagonum Cunha et Freitas, 1940, C. scotti Cunha et Freitas, 1940, C. sphaericum Kopperi, 1935, C. vesiculosum Cunha, 1914.
Acknowledgements
Author is greatly indebted to Prof. H. Wessenberg and Prof. E. Kozloff (USA), Dr. D.H. Lynn (Canada), Prof. I. Lom (Czech Republic), Prof. C. Bardele (Germany), Dr. A.P. Mylnikov and Dr. K.A. Mikrju-kov (Russia) for the permission to use the figures and micrographs from their papers. I also thank Dr. A.F. Krahmalny (Ukraine) for technical assistance in scanning electron microscopy, Dr. A.V. Korniushin (Ukraine) for consultations on cladistic methods, Mrs
E. Trushin (Australia) and Dr. I.A. Grigorovich (Canada) for refining the English and Dr. I.M. Kerzhner (Russia) for advice on nomenclature issues.
References
Aescht E. 2001. Catalogue of the generic names of ciliates (Protozoa, Ciliophora). Denisia.
Andrusova J.I. 1886. On the Infusoria of Kerch Bay. Tr. St.-Petersburg Soc. Nat. 17, 236-259 (in Russian).
Bardele C.F. 1970. Budding and metamorphosis in Acineta tuberosa. An electron microscopic study on morphogenesis in Suctoria. J. Protozool. 17, 51-70.
Bardele C.F. 1972. A microtubule model for ingestion and transport in the suctorian tentacle. Z. Zell-forsch. 126, 116-137.
Bardele C.F. 1974. Transport of materials in the suctorian tentacle. In: Transport at the cellular level. Symp. Soc. Exp. Biol. No. 28. Cambridge University Press, London. pp.191-208.
Bardele C.F. and Grell K.G. 1967. Electronenmicro-skopische Beobachungen zur Nahrungsaufnahme bei dem Suktor Acineta tuberosa Ehrenberg. Z. Zellforsch. 80, 108-123.
Batisse A. 1966. L’ultrastructure des tentacules suceurs d’Ephelota gemmipara Hertwig. C. R. Acad. Sci., Paris. 262, 771-774.
Batisse A. 1967. Donnee nouvelles sur la structure et le functionement des ventouses tentaculaires des acinetiens. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 265, 1056-1058.
Batisse A. 1969. Acinetiens nouveaux ou mal connus des cotes mediterraneennes fransaises. I. Ophryo-
dendron hollandei n. sp. (Suctorida, Ophryo-dendridae). Vie Milieu. 20, 251-277.
Batisse A. 1972. Premieres observations sur l’ultrastructure de Trematosoma boqueti (Guilcher), Batisse (Ciliata, Suctorida). Protistologica. 8, 477495.
Batisse A.1975. Proposition pour une nouvelle systematique des Acinetiens (Ciliophora, Kineto-fragminophora, Suctorida). C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 280, 1797-1800.
Batisse A. 1992. Acinetiens nouveaux ou mal connus des cotes mediterraneennes francaises. 3. Dentaci-netides collini gen. n, sp. n. (Suctoria, Ophryo-dendrina). Vie Millieu. 42, 295-306.
Batisse A. 1994. Sous-classe des Suctoria Claparede et Lachmann, 1858. In: Traite de Zoologie. Ana-tomie, Systematique, Biologie. Tome II. Infusoires cilies. Fascicule 2. Systematique. Masson, Paris, Milan, Barcelone. pp. 493-563.
Bovee E.C. 1981. New episoic suctoria (Protozoa) of the smooth softshell turtle, Trionyx muticus, in northeastern Kansas. Trans. Kans. Acad. Sci. 84, 98-104.
Bower S.M. and Meyer G.R. 1993. Stegotricha enterikos gen. nov., sp. nov. (class Phyllopharyngea, order Rhynchodida), a parasitic ciliate in the digestive gland of pacific oysters (Crassostreagigas), and its distribution in British Columbia. Can. J. Zool. 71, 2005-2017.
Bowman T.E. 1977. Dendrosomides lucicutiae, a new species of suctorian from the pelagic calanoid copepod, Lucicutia. Proc. Biol. Soc. Wash. 89, 695702.
Butschli O. 1889. Protozoa. In: Bronn. Kl. u. Ord. der Tierreich. Bd. 1. Abt. 3. Leipzig. pp. 1098-2035.
Canella M.F. 1957. Studi e ricerche sui Tenaculiferi nel quadro della Biologia generale. Ann.Univ. Ferrara (N.S.). Ser.3, 1. Biol. Anom. 1, 4, 259-716.
Chatthon E. and Lwoff A. 1939. Sur le sucoir des Infusoires Thigmotriches Rhynchoides. Les deux families des Hypocomidae Butschli et des Ancist-rocomidae n. fam. Les deux nouveaux genres Heterocoma et Parahypocoma. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 209, 429-433.
Chatton E. and LwoffA. 1949. Recherches sur les Cilies Thigmotriches. Arch. Zool. exp. gen. 86, 169-253.
Claparede E. and Lachmann J. 1859. Etudes sur les infusoires et les rhizopodes. Mem. Inst. Nat. Genevois. 6, 261-482.
Claparede E. and Lachmann J. 1861. Etudes sur les Infusoires et les Rhizopodes. Mem. Inst. Nat. Genevois. 7, 108-148.
Collin B. 1909. Diagnoses preliminaires d’Acinetiens
nouveaux ou mal connus. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 149, 1094-1095.
Collin B. 1912. Etudes monographiques sur les Acinetiens. II. Morphologie, physiologie, systematique. Arch. Zool. exp. gen. 51, 1-457.
Corliss J.O. 1960. The problem of homonyms among generic names of ciliated protozoa, with proposal of several new names. J. Protozool. 7, 269-278.
Corliss J.O. 1964. A revised classification of the phylum Protozoa. J. Protozool. 11, 7-20.
Corliss J.O. 1979. The ciliated protozoa: characterization, classification and guide to the literature. 2nd ed. Pergamon Press, Oxford, etc.
Curds C.R. 1985a. A revision of Suctoria (Ciliophora, Kinetofragminofora) 1. Acineta and its morphological relatives. Bull. Brit. Mus. (Nat. Hist.) Zool.
48, 75-129.
Curds C.R. 1985b. A revision of Suctoria (Ciliophora, Kinetofragminofora) 2. An addendum to Acineta. Bull. Brit. Mus. (Nat. Hist.) Zool. 49, 163-165.
Curds C.R. 1985c. A revision of Suctoria (Ciliophora, Kinetofragminofora) 3. Tokophrya and its morphological relatives. Bull. Brit. Mus. (Nat. Hist.) Zool.
49, 167-193.
Curds C.R. 1986. A revision of Suctoria (Ciliophora, Kinetofragminofora) 4. Podophrya and its morphological relatives. Bull. Brit. Mus. (Nat. Hist.) Zool.
50, 59-91.
Curds C.R. 1987. A revision of Suctoria (Ciliophora, Kinetofragminofora) 5.The Paracineta and Cory-nophrya problem. Bull. Brit. Mus. (Nat. Hist.) Zool. 52, 71-106.
Dogiel V.A. 1951. General protistology. Sovetskaja Nauka, Moscow (in Russian).
Dons C. 1938. Podocyathus excavatus n. sp. eine neue Suctorie. Det Kongelige Norske Videnskabers Sels kab Forhadlinger. 10, 169-172.
Dorjes J. 1979. Protozoische und metazoische Parasiten in Acoelen Turbellarien. Senckenbergiana Mari-tima. 11, 3/6, 139-169.
Dovgal I.V. 1988. Current state of the faunistic knowledge of tentaculous infusoria (Ciliophora, Suctoria) in the Ukrainian SSR. Deposited in VINITI 22.04.88, No. 3135- B88, 1-35 (in Russian).
Dovgal I.V. 1991. Peculiarities of Ciliophora Suctoria biocoenotic distribution in water bodies of the right-bank Ukrainian Polesje area. Vestnik zoologii. 25, 4, 54-57 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. 1994. Seasonal changes in freshwater faunal complexes (Ciliophora, Suctoria) in water bodies of the Ukraine. Vestnik zoologii. 28, 1, 53-58 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. 1996. Keys for identification of tentaculous infusoria (Ciliophora, Suctoria) of the Ukrainian fauna. Vestnik zoologii. Suppl., 2, 1-42 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. 1998. The origin and evolution of the adhesive organelles in infusoria (Ciliophora). Vestnik zoologii. 32, 1-2, 18-29 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. 1999. A new species of the genus Soracineta (Acinetida, Acinetidae) and a redescription of the genus. Zool. Zh. 78, 1, 112-114 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. 2000. The morphological and ontogenetic changes in Protista under transition to the sessile mode of life. Zhurn. obsh. biol. 61, 3, 290-304 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. 2002. The germ similarity in ontogeny of ciliates (Ciliophora). Vestnik zoologii. 36, 2, 3-9 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. and Kochin V.A. 1995. Adaptations of the sessile protists to the running water factors. Vestnik zoologii. 29, 4, 19-24 (in Russian with English summary).
Dovgal I.V. and Kochin V.A. 1997. Fluid boundary layer as an adaptive zone for sessile protists. Zhurn. obsh. biol. 58, 2, 67-74 (in Russian with English summary).
Dujardin F. 1841. Histoire naturelle des Zoophytes. Infusoires comprenant la physiologie et la classification de ces animaux. Libraire Encyclopedique de Roret, Paris.
Dumas E. 1937. Les microzoaires ou infusoires proprement dits. 3 fasc. “Les Imprimeries Rennies”, Moulins.
Ehrenberg C.G. 1838. Die Infusionsthierchen als vollkommene Organismen. Ein Blick in das tiefere organishe Leben der Natur. Leopold Voss Verlag, Leipzig. 1, 1-612, 2, 1-64.
Eisler K. and Fleury A. 1995. Morphogenesis and evolution in ciliates. In: Protistological Actualities. Proceedings of the Second European Congress of Protistology. Universite Blaise Pascal, Clermont-Ferrand. pp. 102-127.
Eismond J. 1891. Uber die Entstehung der Saugrorchen (resp. Achsenfaden) innerhalb der Tentaceln bei Dendrocometesparadoxus. Zool. Anz. 14, 1-3.
Entz G. 1883. Beitrage zur Kenntnis der Infusorien. Z. wiss. Zool. 38, 167-189.
Ettl M. 2001. The ciliate community (Protozoa: Ciliophora) of a municipal activated sludge plant: interactions between species and environmental factors. Protozoological Monographs. 1, 1-62.
Faure-Fremiet E. and Guilcher I. 1947. Les affinities des infusoires acinetiens et la ciliature de leurs
formes vagiles. Bull. Soc. Zool. Fr. 77, 4-5, 1216.
Fenchel T. 1965. On the ciliate fauna associated with the marine species of the amphipod genus Gam-marus J.G. Fabricius. Ophelia. 2, 281-303.
Fernandez-Leborans G., Tato-Porto M.L. and Sorbe J.C. 1996. The morphology and life cycle of Ophryodendron mysidacii sp. nov. a marine sucto-rian epibiont on a mysid crustacean. J. Zool., Lond. 238, 97-112.
Fernandez-Leborans G. and Tato-Porto M.L. 2000. A review of the species of protozoan epibionts on crustaceans. II. Suctorian ciliates. Crustaceana. 73, 1205-1237.
Foissner W. 1995. Tropical protozoan diversity: 80 ciliate species (Protozoa, Ciliophora) in a soil sample from a tropical dry forest of Costa Rica, with description of four new genera and seven new species. Arch. Protistenk. 145, 37-79.
Foissner W. 1998. An updated compilation of world soil ciliates (Protozoa, Ciliophora), with ecological notes, new records, and descriptions of new species. Eur. J. Protistol. 34, 195-235.
Foissner W., Berger H., Blatterer H. and Kohmann F. 1995. Taxonomishe und Okologishe Revision der Ciliaten des Saprobiensystems. Band IV: Gymno-stomatea, Loxodes, Suctoria. Informationsberichte des Bayer. Landesamtes fur Wasserwirtscheft. Heft
1. Munchen..
Foissner W. and Foissner I. 1995. Fine structure and systematic position of Enchelyomorpha vermicularis (Smith, 1899) Kahl, 1930, an anaerobic ciliate (Protozoa, Ciliophora) from domestic sewage. Acta Protozool. 34, 21-34.
Fraipont J. 1877. Recherches sur les Acinetiens de la cote d’Ostende. Bull. Acad. Roy. Belg. 44, 770814.
Fraipont J. 1878. Recherches sur les Acinetiens de la cote d’Ostende. Bull. Acad. Roy. Belg. 45, 247299.
Gajewskaja N.S. 1929. Uber einige seltene Infusorien aus dem Baikalsee. Bull. Acad. Sci. USSR. 9, 845854 (in Russian).
Gajewskaja N.S. 1933. Morphologie und Systematik der Infusorien des Baikalsee. Zoologica. 32, 1-5, 1-298.
Gassovsky G.N. 1916. Sur la faune des Infusoires du golf de Kola et de ses environs. Trav. Soc. Imp. Nat. Petrograd. (Sect. Zool. et Physiol.). 45, 4, 139-215 (in Russian).
Gonnert R. 1935. Uber Systematik, Morphologie, Entwicklungsgeschichte und Parasiten einiger Dendrosomidae nebst Beschreibung zweier neuer Suktorien. Arch. Protistenk. 86, 113-154.
Goodrich J.R. and Jahn T.L. 1943. Epizoic Suctoria (Protozoa) from turtles. Trans. Amer. Microsc. Soc. 62, 245-253.
Grell K.G. 1950. Der Generationswechel des parasi-tischen Suktors Tachyblaston ephelotensis Martin. Z. Parasitkd. 14, 499-534.
Grell K.G. 1967. Parasiten und Rauber von Ephelota gemmipara (Suctoria). Institut fur den Wissen-schaftlichen film. 117-126.
Grell K.G. and Meister A. 1982. Die Ultrastuktur von Acinetopsis rara Robin (Suctoria). I. Tentakeln und Nahrungsaufnahnme. Protistologica. 18, 67-84.
Guhl W. 1979. Beitrage zur Systematik, Biologie und Morphologie der Epistylidae (Ciliata, Peritricha). Arch. Protistenk. 121, 417-483.
Guhl W. 1985. Beitrag zur Kenntnis der Ciliatenfauna verschiedener Belebtschlamme mit besonderer Berucksichtigung der Fruherkennung von Blah-und Schwimmschlammbildung an der Variabilitat peritricher Ciliaten. Arch. Protistenk. 129, 203238.
Guilcher I. 1947. Discophrya pyriformis n.sp. et son mode de bourgeonnement. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 225, 72-74.
Guilcher I. 1948a. Affinities structurales des bourgeons migrateurs d’infusoires acinetiens. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 226, 958-960.
Guilcher I. 1948b. Morphogenese chez l’Acinetien Ephelota gemmipara Hertw. Bull. Soc. zool. Fr. 73, 24-27.
Guilcher I. 1950a. Morphologenese et morphologie comparee chez les cilies gemmipares: Chonotriches et Tentaculiferes. Ann. Biol. 26, 465-478.
Guilcher I. 1950b. Sur quelques Acinetiens nouveaux ectoparasites de copepodes Harpacticides. Arch. Zool. exp. gen. 87, 24-30.
Guilcher I. 1951. Contribution a l’etude des Cilies Gemmipares, Chonotriches et Tentaculiferes. Ann. Sc. Nat. (Zool.). 13, 33-132.
Hausmann K. 1978. Extrusive organelles in protists. Int. Rev. Cytol. 52, 197-276.
Hertwig R. 1875. Uber Podophrya gemmipara nebst Bemerkungen zum Bau und zur systematischen Stellung der Acineten. Morphologisches Jahr-buch.1, Heft 1, 20-82.
Hickson S.J. 1903. The Infusoria of Corticata Heterocariota. In: A Treatise de Zoology. I, 2. Introduction and Protozoa. Black, London. pp. 361-426.
Hitchen E.T. and Butler R.D. 1973. Ultrastructural studies of the commensal suctorian, Choanophrya infundibulifera Hartog. I.Tentacles structure, movement and feeding. Z. Zellforch. 144, 37-57.
Holm F. 1925. Uber die Suktorien in der Elbe bei Hamburg und ihre Lebensbedingungen. Arch. Hydro-biol. Suppl. 4, 3/4, 389-440.
Holt P.A. 1972. An electron microscope study of the rhabdophorine ciliate Didinium nasutum during excystment. Trans. Amer. Micros. Soc. 91, 144168.
Holt P.A. and Corliss J.O. 1973. Pattern variability in microtubular arrays associated with the tentacles of Actinobolina (Ciliatea: Gymnostomatida). J. Cell. Biol. 58, 213-219.
Hull R.W. 1961. Studies on suctorian Protozoa: the mechanism of ingestion of prey cytoplasm. J. Protozool. 8, 351-359.
Ike K., Nuruki R., Imai S. and Ishii T. 1983. Composition of intestinal ciliates and bacteria excreted in feces ofthe race-horce. Jap. J. Vet. Sci. 45, 157-163.
International Code of Zoological Nomenclature. Fourth edition. 2000. Adopted by the International Union of Biological Sciences. St.-Petersburg: ZIN RAS. 1-221 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1963. Pathology of Ciliophora. II. Life cycles of Suctoria parasiting in Urostyla and Paramecium. Tsitologia. 5, 428-439 (in Russian with English summary).
Jankowski A.V. 1967a. New genera of tentacled Infusoria (Suctoria). In: Proc. V Conf. Young Moldavian Scientists. Kishinev. pp. 35-36 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1967b. A new system of ciliate protozoa (Ciliophora). In: Proc. Zool. Inst. 43, pp.3-52 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1970. Trophogemma poljanskyi gen. et sp. n. (Ciliophora, Suctoria) from the shrimp’s antennae. Zool. Zh. 50, 1445-1456 (in Russian with English summary).
Jankowski A.V. 1972. Recapitulation ofphylogenesis in ciliate ontogeny. In: Problems of evolution. Vol. 2. Nauka, Novosibirsk. pp. 95-123 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1973a. Taxonomic revision of subphylum Ciliophora Doflein, 1901. Zool. Zh. 52, 165175 (in Russian with English summary).
Jankowski A.V. 1973b. Infusoria. Subclass Chono-tricha. Fauna of the USSR.Vol 2. Issue 1. Nauka, Leningrad (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1975. A conspectus of the new system of subphylum Ciliophora Doflein, 1901. In: Accounts of scientific sessions on results of scientific works, year 1974. Abstracts of reports. Zool. Inst., Leningrad. pp. 26-27 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1978. Phylogeny and divergence of suctorians. Doklady Academii Nauk SSSR. 242, 493-496 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1980. Conspectus of a new system of the phylum Ciliophora. In: Proc. Zool. Inst. 94. pp. 103-121 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1981. New species, genera and families of tentacled infusoria (class Suctoria). In: Proc. Zool. Inst. 107. pp. 80-115 (in Russian with English summary).
Jankowski A.V. 1982. New genera of symbiotic protozoans from Lake Baikal. In: News about a Baikalian fauna. Nauka: Novosibirsk. pp. 25-32 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1986. New and little known genera of ciliated protozoa (phylum Ciliophora). In: Proc. Zool. Inst. 144. pp. 72-88 (in Russian with English summary).
Jankowski A.V. 1987. Supplement to the generic index of tentacled protozoans (Suctoria). In: Current problems of protozoology. Proc. IV All-Union Congr. Protozool. Nauka, Leningrad. pp. 18-19 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1992. New generic combinations for some species of Ciliophora. Tsitologia. 34, 4, 171 (in Russian).
Jankowski A.V. 1994. Vostonica gen. n. from psammonic copepods in the Pacific (Suctoria Vermigenea). Zoosyst. Rossica. 3, 1, 1-4.
Jankowski A.V. 1997. Mistarcon parasiticus — an ectoparasite of peritrichs in the Baikal lake and a status of the genus Manuelophrya (Ciliophora: Suctoria). Parasitologiya. 31, 4, 321-326 (in Russian with English summary).
Jenner R.A. and Schram F.R. 1999. The grand game of metazoan phylogeny: rules and strategies. Biol. Rev. 74, 121-142.
Jones E.E. 1973. Three new species of Paracineta (Protozoa: Suctoria) from Mobile Bay, Alabama. J. Mar. Sci. Alabama. 2, 31-40.
Kahl A. 1931. Uber die verwandtschaftlichen Bezie-hungen der Suctorien zu den Prostomen Infuso-rien. Arch. Protistenk. 73, 423-481.
Kahl A. 1934. Suctoria: In Grimpe G. und Wagler E: Die Tierwelt der Nord- und Ostsee. Lief 26, 11, 5, 184-226.
Kitching J.A. 1952. Observation on the mechanism of feeding in the suctorian Podophrya. J. Exp. Biol.
29, 255-266.
Kormos J.A. 1935a. A Prodiscophrya collini (Root) ivari ketalakudaga es konjugacioja. Allatt. Kozl. 32, 152168.
Kormos J.A. 1935b. Adatok a Suctoriusok fejlodesenek ismeretchez. Matematikai es termeszettudomanyi ertesito. 53, 522-541.
Kormos J.A. 1938a. A szivorkasok (Suctoria) szivscso-veinek szerke zete es mukodese. Allatt. Kozl. 35, 130-153.
Kormos J.A. 1938b. Fejlodestani vizsoga latok a Szivokasokon (Suctoria). Budapest, A magyar tudomanios Akad. kiadase.
Kormos J.A. and Kormos K. 1957. Die entwi-cklungsgeschichtlichen Grundlagen des Systems der Suctorien. I. Acta Zool. Acad. Sci. Hung. 3, 1-
2, 147-162.
Kormos J.A. and Kormos K. 1958. Uber die Pseudo-gemma-Frage. Acta Zool. Acad. Sci. Hung. 4, 1-2, 157-166.
Kormos J. 1959. Phylogenetishe Untersuchungen an Suctorien. Acta Biol. Hung. 9, 9-23.
Kozloff E.N. 1966. Phalacrocleptes verruciformis gen. nov., sp. nov., an unciliated ciliate from the sabellid polychaete Schizobranchia insignis Bush. Biol. Bull. 130, 202-210.
Kudo R.R. 1946. Protozoology. 3th ed. Thomas, Springfield.
Kunz H. 1936. Eine neue Suctorie, Cucumophrya leptomesochrae gen. et sp. nov. von Helgoland. Zool.Anz. 114, 7/8, 173-174.
Lee R.E., Kurgens P. and Mylnikov A.P. 1991. Feeding apparatus of the colourless flagellate Katablepharis (Cryptophyceae). J. Phycol. 27, 725-733.
Lee R.E. and Kurgens P. 1992. Relationship between the flagellates and the ciliates. Microbiol. Rews. 56, 529-542.
Lom J. and Kozloff E. 1967. The ultrastructure of Phalacrocleptes verruciformis an unciliated ciliate parasiting the polychaete Schizobranchia insignis. J. Cell. Biol. 33, 355-364.
Lom J. and Kozloff E. 1968. Observations on the ultrastructure of the suctorial tube of ancistrocomid ciliates. Folia Parasitol. 15, 291-308.
Lynn D.H. and Foissner W. 1994. The feet of Pseudo-chlamydonellopsis plurivacuolata (Ciliophora, Cyrtophorida) and a brief review of tentacle-like structures of ciliates. Eur. J. Protistol. 30, 423430.
Maccagno T. 1934. Sulla morfologia di Stylocometes digitatus Stein, acinete asellicola. Bull. Mus. Zool. Anat. comp. Torino. 44, 327-334.
Matjasic J. 1963. Une nouvelle Choanophrya (Ciliata, Suctoria) sur Stenasellus virei. Ann. speleol. 18, 267-270.
Matthes D. 1954a. Suktorienstudien I. Beitrag zur Kenntnis der Gattung Discophrya Lachmann. Arch. Protistenk. 99, 187-226.
Matthes D. 1954b. Suktorienstudien II. Uber obliga-torisch symphorionte Discophrya-Arten. Zool. Anz.152, 5-6, 105-121.
Matthes D. 1954c. Suktorienstudien IV. Neue obliga-torisch symphoriont mit Wasserkafern verge-
sellschaftete Discophrya-Arten. Zool. Anz. 153, 3-
4, 76-88.
Matthes D. 1954d. Suktorienstudien VI. Die Gattung Heliophrya Saedeleer und Tellier, 1929. Arch. Protistenk. 100, 143-152.
Matthes D. 1954e. Suktorienstudien VII. Discophrya buckei (Kent), eine formenreiche Art der Lingui-fera-Gruppe. Zool. Anz. 153, 9-10, 242-250.
Matthes D. 1956. Suktorienstudien VII. Thecacineta calix (Schroder, 1907) (Thecacinetidae nov. fam.) und ihre Fortpflanzung durch Vermoid-Schwar-mer. Arch. Protistenk.101, 4, 477-528.
Matthes D. 1971. Parasitische Suktorien. Zool.Anz. 186, 3-4, 272-291.
Matthes D. 1974. Sessile Ciliaten and ihre Adapta-tionen an die symphorionte Lebensweise. Zool. Anz. 192, 3-4, 153-164.
Matthes D. and Guhl W. 1975. Systematik, Anpassun-gen und Raumparasitismus auf Hydrophiliden lebender operculariformen Epistyliden. Arch. Protistenk 117, 110-186.
Matthes D., Guhl W. and Haider G. 1988. Suctoria und Urceolaridae. In: Protozoenfauna. Band 7/1. Gustav Fisher Verlag, Stuttgart, New York. pp. 1309.
Mereschkowsky C. 1882. Les Suctocilies, nouveau groupe d’Infusoria, intermediaires les Cilies et les Acinetiens. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 95, 1232-1234.
Mereschkowsky C. 1883. Sur les Infusoires Suctocilies. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 96, 276-279.
Mikrjukov K.A. 1997. Fine structure of prehensive tentacles-axopodia in Ephelota gemmipara (Suctoria, Ephelotidae) from the White Sea. Zool. Zh. 76, 3, 269-274 (in Russian with English summary).
Mogensen M.M. and Butler R.D. 1984. Cytological studies of Trichophrya rotunda (Hentschel). J. Protozool. 31, 101-111.
Mylnikov A.P., Mylnikova Z.M. and Tsvetkov A.I. 1998. The ultrastructural peculiarities of predatory flagellates Katablepharis sp. Tsitologia. 40, 7, 706712 (in Russian with English summary).
Nozawa K. 1938. Some new freshwater Suctoria. Annot. zool. Jap. 17, 247-259.
Nozawa K. 1939. Two new species of the freshwater Suctorians, Pottsia and Metacineta. Annot. zool. Jap. 18, 58-64.
Patterson D.J. 1994. Protozoa: Evolution and Syste-matics. In: Progress in Protozoology. Proc. IX Int. Congr. Protozool. Gustav Fisher, Stuttgart, etc., pp. 1-14.
Paulin J.J. and Corliss J.O. 1969. Ultrastructural and other observation which suggest suctorian affinities for the taxonomically enigmatic ciliate Cyatho-dinium. J. Protozool. 16, 216-223.
Penard E. 1914. Sur quelqus tentaculiferes muscicoles. Arch. Protistenk. 34, 277-294.
Penard E. 1920a. Etudes sur les Infusoires tentaculiferes. Mem. Soc. Phys. Geneve. 39, 131-229.
Penard E. 1920b. Physaliella collini un tentaculifere parasite de Callidina socialis. Festschrift fur Zschokke. 28, 1-7.
Perez C. 1903. Sur un Acinetien nouveau Lernaeophrya capitata n. g. n. sp. trouve sur le Cordylophora lacustris. C. r. Soc. biol, Paris. 55, 98-100.
Plate L. 1886. Untersuchungen einiger an den Kiemenblattern des Gammarus pulex lebenden Ektoparasiten. Z. wiss. Zool. 43, 175-241.
Plate L. 1888. Studien uber Protozoen. Zool. Jb. 3, 135-200.
Puytorac P. de., Batisse A. and Deroux G., etc. 1993. Proposition d’une nouvelle classification du phylum des protozoaires Ciliophora Doflein, 1901. C. r. Acad. Sci., Paris. 316, 716-720.
Puytorac P. de. 1994. Sous-classe des Rhynchodia Chatton et Lwoff, 1939. In: Traite de Zoologie. Anatomie, Systematique, Biologie. Tome II. Infusoires cilies. Fascicule 2. Systematique. Masson, Paris, Milan, Barcelone. pp. 475-492.
Raabe Z. 1964. Remarks on the principles and outline of the system of Protozoa. Acta Protozool. 2, 118.
Rieder J. 1985. Critical revision of the literature and new communications of the genus Metacineta Butschli (Protozoa, Suctoria) with proposal of a consequential taxonomy. Arch. Protistenk. 130, 201-287.
Rieder J. 1988. Bekannte und neue Befunde betreffend die Gattungen Cyclophrya und Heliophrya (Protozoa, Suctoria). Arch. Hydrobiol. Suppl. 81, 69-101.
Riley J.L. and Katz L.A. 2001. Wide spread distribution of extensive chromosomal fragmentation in ciliates. Mol. Biol. Evol. 18, 1372-1377.
Rudzinska M.A. 1965. The fine structure and function of the tentacle in Tokophrya infusionum. J. Cell. Biol. 25, 459-477.
Rudzinska M.A. and Porter K.R. 1953. Submicro-scopic morphology of structures involved in the feeding of Tokophrya infusionum. Proc. Soc. Protozool. 4, 9.
Sand R. 1899. Etude monographique sur la groupe des Infusoires tentaculiferes. Ann. Soc. Belg. Microsc.
24, 57-189.
Schewiakoff W. 1893. Uber einige ecto- und endo-parasitische Protozoen der Cyclopiden. Bull. de la Soc. imp. des Naturalistes de Moscou. 1, 1-
29.
Seravin L. and Gerassimova Z. 1978. A new macrosystem of ciliates. Acta Protozool. 17. 399-418.
Silvester N.R. and Sleigh M.A. 1985. The forces on microorganisms at surfaces in flowing water. Freshwat. Biol. 15, 433-448.
Small E.B. and Lynn D.H. 1985. Phylum Ciliophora Doflein, 1901. In: An illustrated guide to the Protozoa. Society of Protozoologists, Kansas. 1-
9, pp. 393-575.
Spero H.J. 1982. Phagotrophy in Gymnodinium fungiforme (Pyrrophyta): the peduncle as an organelle of ingestion. J. Phycol. 18, 356-360.
Stein F. 1867. Der Organismus der Infusiosthiere. II. Heterotrichen. Leipzig: Engelmann.
Strand E. 1928. Miscellanea nomenclatorica zoo-logica et palaeontologica. Arch. Naturgesch. 92, 30-69.
Strelkow A.A. 1939. Parasitic infusoria from the intestine of Ungulata belonging to the family Equidae. Sci. Trans. Leningrad Pedagog. Inst. 17,
7, 1-262 (in Russian with English summary).
Sundermann C.A. and Paulin J.J. 1981. Ultrastructural features of Allantosoma intestinalis, a suctorian cili-ate isolated from the large intestine of the horse. J. Protozool. 28, 400-405.
Swarczewsky B. 1928a. Sur Kenntnis der Baikal-protistenfauna. Dia an der Baikalgammariden lebeden Infusorien. 1-6. 1. Dendrosomidae. Arch. Protistenk. 61, 349-378.
Swarczewsky B. 1928b. Sur Kenntnis der Baikal-protistenfauna. Dia an der Baikalgammariden lebeden Infusorien. 1-6. 2. Dendrocometidae. Arch. Protistenk. 62, 41-79.
Swarczewsky B. 1928c. Sur Kenntnis der Baikal-protistenfauna. Dia an der Baikalgammariden lebeden Infusorien. 1-6. 3. Discophryidae. Arch. Protistenk. 63, 1-17.
Swarczewsky B. 1929. Sur Kenntnis der Baikal-protistenfauna. Dia an der Baikalgammariden lebeden Infusorien. 1-6. 4. Acinetidae. Arch. Protistenk. 63, 362-449.
Timoshenko O.N. 1996. The ciliates from the large intestine of the perissodactyls and proboscideans. Thesis to acquire the degree of Candidate of Sciences (Biol.). Schmalhausen Institute of Zoology, Kiev (in Russian with English summary).
Titar V.M. 1989. The parasites of the fishes. In: The invertebrates and fishes of river Dnieper and its water reservoirs. Naukova dumka, Kiev. pp. 210238 (in Russian).
Van Hoven W., Gilchrist F.M.C. and Stenson M.O. 1998. Six new ciliated protozoan species of Tricho-stomatida, Entodiniomorphida and Suctorida from the intestine of wild african rhinoceroses. Acta Protozool. 37, 113-124.
Wenzel F. 1961. Notisen uber Ophryodendron multi-ramosum n. sp. und Seine Konjugation. Arch. Protistenk. 105, 269-272.
Wessenberg H. and Antipa G. 1970. Capture and ingestion of Paramecium by Didinium nasutum. J. Protozool. 17, 250-270.
Willis A.G. 1945. On the structure and life-history of Metephelota coronata gen. nov., sp.nov. Trans. r. Soc. Edinb. 61, 399-413.
Zykoff W. 1903. Studies on a fauna of Volga and hydrofauna of Saratov guberniya. Bull. de la Soc. Imp. des Natur. du Moscou. 17, 1-148 (in Russian).
Address for correspondence: Igor V. Dovgal. Schmalhausen Institute ofZoology NAS of Ukraine, B. Khmelnitsky str., 15. 01601. Kiev-30, Ukraine. E-mail: [email protected]
The manuscript is presented by A.A. Dobrovolskij
Protistology Instructions to authors
An International Journal
An International Journal “Protistology” accepts original, substantial and critical manuscripts in any area of investigation of protists. Suitable topics include: morphology, taxonomy, systematics, phylogeny, ecology, behaviour, physiology, biochemistry, genetics, cell and molecular biology of protozoa, algae and zoosporic fungi.
Reviews of books and textbooks on protistology, information concerning conferences, workshops, etc. in the field of protistology are also accepted.
Organization of manuscripts
The size of manuscript is not limited in general. It is recommended to follow the usual structure of the paper arranged as follows: Title page (Full title of article, Name(s) of author(s), Addresses, Summary (summary should be a single paragraph not more than half page, and Key words), Text (Introduction, Material and Methods, Results, Discussion, Acknowledgements, References, Address for correspondence with email), Tables and Legends to the Figures. The preferable position of tables and figures in the text should be indicated on the margins of the printed version of the manuscript. The names of species and genera must be italicized.
The structure can be different in reviews and some special reports.
Figures and Legends
Line drawings and black and white photographs should be submitted in two copies. Figures and photographs can be placed separately throughout the text or can be grouped in plates. A figure (a photograph) should fit the column size (8.0 cm) or the maximum page size (16.5 x 23.2 cm). All figures and photographs should be prepared in the final size of reproduction.
The first copy is the author’s version, where all letters, figures and graphic symbols should be indicated. Details (organells, structural elements, etc.) are marked by italisized small letters (for example, n — nucleus, mt — microtubules, etc.). In plates with several positions, each position is marked by an italisized capital letter (A, B, C, etc.). In figures, the use of graphic symbols - simple and double arrows, arrowheads, asterisks, etc. - is possible. In photoplates, separate positions should be spaced 3 mm apart.
Photographs and line drawings (the latter - if necessary) should have scale bars with their value in mm, |im, or nm.
The second copy is the originals of figures and photographs without any inscriptions and symbols (corresponding numbers and positions should be marked in pencil on the back side).
Figure legends on separate sheets should be brief and precise. They must not repeat, expand or specify the information in the text. Legends to separate figures should contain the title of the figure and the explanation of symbols used in the figure (letter symbols are given alphabtically, then follows the explanation of graphic symbols):
Fig. 1. Floating form of Korotnevella discophora.
n — nucleus, p- pseudopodia.
Legends to plates should have the general title of the plate, the titles of separate positions and explanation of symbols:
Fig. 5. Microsporidia from the gut of Gryllus bimaculatus. A - epithelium of the gut with invaded enterocytes; B -parasitophorous vacuole with dividing meront; C - early stages of sporogenesis, D - mature spore. Abbreviations: b — basal plate of epithelium, e — exospore, fv — food vacuole, pv — parasitophorous vacuole; arrow — a fragment of everted polar filament.
One and the same letter symbol should mark one and the same structure throught the figures. If letter symbols are repeated, the explanation is given only the first time the symbol is used. In the following figure legends it should be written: for explanation of other symbols see Fig. 2.
Figures should be placed in the order in which they are mentioned in the text. Reference to a separate figure contains its number only, references to plates may also contain an indication of the position (Fig. 2, A; or Figs 2, B; 3, A, C).
References
References should be cited in the text by name and date of publication (e.g.: Hibberd and Leedale, 1972; Andersen et al., 1991). Listing of several references should be ordered in years ascending manner (Stein, 1878; Kent 1880; Fisch, 1885; Griessmann, 1914). It is possible to cite unpublished data (S.A.Karpov, unpubl. data) as well as personal communication in the text (A.V.Goodkov, pers. comm.). References should be typed single-spaces on separate sheets in alphabetical order. The names of journals should be abbreviated as in the Serial Sources for the Biosis Data Base. Examples of the reference list:
Karpov S.A. 1982. The ultrathin structure ofchoanoflagellate Monosiga ovata. Tsitologiya. 24, 4, 400-404 (in Russian with English summary).
King P.P. and Mercer C.F. 1979. Effect of Adelina sp.
(Protozoa: Coccidia) on Heteronychus arator fecundity and populations (Coleoptera: Scara-baeidae). Proceed. of the 2nd Australasian Conference on Grassland Invertebrate Ecology. Palmerston North, New Zealand; p. 200.
Moestrup 0. 1995. Current status of chrysophyte «splinter groups»: synurophytes, pedinellids, silicoflagellates. In: Chrysophyte algae: ecology, phylogeny, development (Eds. Sangren C., Smol J.P. and Kristiansen J.). Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. pp. 7591.
Raikov I.B. 1982. The protozoan nucleus. Springer-Verlag, Berlin.
Verhagen F.J.M., Zolffel M., Brugerolle G. and Patterson D.J. 1994. Adriamonas peritocrescens gen. nov., sp. nov., a new free-living soil flagellate (Protista, Pseudodendromonadida, incertae sedis). Europ. J. Protistol. 30, 295-308.
Submission of manuscript
The manuscripts should be submitted in English. Authors are fully responsible for the correct use of English language in their papers.
The original manuscript should be sent together with 2 printed copies of the same quality, and electronic copy on the diskette in following formats: Word for Windows (version
6 or higher), or RTF. The text should be printed 1.5-spaced with font Times New Roman, font size: 12 for normal text and 14 for the heads, on the pages of A4 with margins: top -
2 cm, bottom - 2.5 cm, left - 3 cm, and right - 3 cm.
The manuscripts should be submitted to the Journal via the members of Editorial and Advisory Boards:
Andrew Dobrovolskij - Department of Invertebrate Zoology, Faculty of Biology & Soil Sci., St.Petersburg State University, Universitetskaja nab. 7/9, St. Petersburg, 199034, RUSSIA.
Mark Farmer - Department of Cellular Biology,
University of Georgia, 724 Biological Sciences Building, Athens, Georgia 30602. U.S.A. E-mail: [email protected].
Sergei Fokin - Biological Research Institute of St.Petersburg State University, Oranienbaumskoye sch. 2, Stary Petershof, St.Petersburg, 198904. RUSSIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Alexander Frolov — Zoological Institute RAS,
Universitetskaya nab. 1. St. Petersburg, 199034. RUSSIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Andrew Goodkov - Biological Research Institute of St.Petersburg State University, Oranienbaumskoye sch. 2, Stary Petershof, St.Petersburg, 198904. RUSSIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Andrzej Grebecki - Department of Cell Biology,
M.Nencki Institute of Experimental Biology, Pasteura 3, 02-093, Warszawa, POLAND. E-mail: [email protected].
Norbert Hulsmann - Free University Berlin, Dept. of Zoology, Koenigin-Luise-Str. 1-3, 14195, Berlin. GERMANY.
E-mail: [email protected].
Irma Issi - Institute for Plant Protection, sch.
Podbielskogo 3, Pushkin, St.Petersburg,
189620. RUSSIA.
Serguei Karpov - Department of Invertebrate Zoology, Faculty of Biology and Soil Sci., St. Petersburg State University, Universitetskaja nab. 7/9, St. Petersburg, 199034. RUSSIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Barry S. C. Leadbeater - University of Birmingham,
School of Biological Sciences, Edgbaston, GB-Birmingham B15 2TT. ENGLAND.
E-mail: [email protected].
David J. Patterson - University of Sydney School of Biological Sciences. Sydney NSW 2006. AUSTRALIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Sergei Skarlato - Institute of Cytology RAS,
Tikhoretsky pr. 4, St.Petersburg, 194064, RUSSIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Lev Seravin - Biological Research Institute of St.Petersburg State University, Oranienbaumskoye sch. 2, Stary Petershof, St.Petersburg, 198904. RUSSIA.
Alexander Yudin - Institute of Cytology RAS,
Tikhoretsky pr. 4, St.Petersburg, 194064, RUSSIA.
E-mail: [email protected].
Review process
A member of Editorial and Advisory Boards sends the manuscript to reviewers, works with authors, and then sends the final version of the manuscript to the Editorial Office (to Andrew Goodkov). Each member of Editorial and Advisory Boards is responsible for the recommended paper and his name will be published in a footnote of paper.
Reprints
15 reprints of the article are free for each author.